diff options
| author | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 01:30:00 -0700 |
|---|---|---|
| committer | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 01:30:00 -0700 |
| commit | 6b0324769ff848f7d2842eddfa8ce7c623842461 (patch) | |
| tree | f5caf7e29a42282c9cbed09ca964d3ae18821f29 /20880-h | |
Diffstat (limited to '20880-h')
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/20880-h.htm | 8081 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img001.jpg | bin | 0 -> 106328 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg | bin | 0 -> 358720 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img002.jpg | bin | 0 -> 100526 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg | bin | 0 -> 428611 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img003.jpg | bin | 0 -> 41624 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img004.jpg | bin | 0 -> 51732 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img005.jpg | bin | 0 -> 32732 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img006.jpg | bin | 0 -> 32779 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img007.jpg | bin | 0 -> 36058 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img008.jpg | bin | 0 -> 36155 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img009.jpg | bin | 0 -> 69907 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img010.jpg | bin | 0 -> 65662 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img011.jpg | bin | 0 -> 56163 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img012.jpg | bin | 0 -> 50464 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img013.jpg | bin | 0 -> 49344 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img014.jpg | bin | 0 -> 58028 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img015.jpg | bin | 0 -> 53708 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img016.jpg | bin | 0 -> 44540 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img017.jpg | bin | 0 -> 62732 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg | bin | 0 -> 261454 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img018.jpg | bin | 0 -> 36773 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 20880-h/images/img019.jpg | bin | 0 -> 40801 bytes |
23 files changed, 8081 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/20880-h/20880-h.htm b/20880-h/20880-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..b8b3aed --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/20880-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,8081 @@ +<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN"> +<html> + +<head> +<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1"> +<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Story of Russia Author: R. Van Bergen, M.A.</title> + + +<style type="text/css"> +<!-- + +body {font-size: 1em; text-align: justify; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;} + +h1 {font-size: 140%; text-align: center; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 2em;} +h2 {font-size: 130%; text-align: center; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 2em;} +h3 {font-size: 130%; text-align: center; margin-top: 4em; margin-bottom: 1em;} +h4 {font-size: 1em; text-align: center; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;} +h5 {font-size: 1em; text-align: center; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 2em;} + +a {text-decoration: none;} + +ul {list-style-type: upper-roman} + +.p2 {margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 1em;} + +.pagenum {visibility: hidden; position: absolute; right:0; + font-size: 0.8em; text-align: right; + color: #C0C0C0; background-color: inherit;} + +.smcap {font-variant: small-caps; font-size: 95%;} + +.col50 {margin-left: 50%;} + +.left05 {margin-left: 05%;} + +.figcenter {text-align: center;} + +--> +</style> + +</head> + +<body> + + +<pre> + +The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Story of Russia, by R. Van Bergen + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: The Story of Russia + +Author: R. Van Bergen + +Release Date: March 23, 2007 [EBook #20880] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF RUSSIA *** + + + + +Produced by Barbara Tozier, Bill Tozier, Christine P. +Travers and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at +http://www.pgdp.net + + + + + + +</pre> + + + +<p>[Transcriber's note: Obvious printer's errors have been corrected. +Author's spelling has been maintained.]</p> + + +<a id="img001" name="img001"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<a href="images/img001bg.jpg"> +<img src="images/img001.jpg" width="600" height="459" alt="Map" title="Map"></a> +</div> + + +<h1>THE STORY OF RUSSIA</h1> + +<h4>BY</h4> + +<h3>R. VAN BERGEN, M.A.</h3> + +<h5><span class="smcap">AUTHOR OF "THE STORY OF JAPAN," "THE STORY OF CHINA," ETC.</span></h5> + +<p class="figcenter">NEW YORK-:-CINCINNATI-:-CHICAGO<br> +AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY</p> + + +<p class="figcenter"><span class="smcap">Copyright</span>, 1905,<br> +<span class="smcap">By</span> AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY</p> + +<p class="figcenter">Entered at Stationers' Hall, London</p> + +<p class="figcenter"><span class="smcap">Story of Russia</span><br> + +W. P. 2.</p> + + +<h3>To<br> +HENRY MATHER LOWMAN<br> +<span class="smcap">amicus certus re incerta cernitur.</span></h3> + + + + + +<h2>PREFACE.</h2> + + +<p>Recent events have drawn the attention upon Russia, a country of which +but little is known here, because the intercourse between it and the +United States has been limited. In my frequent journeys to the Far +East, I found it often difficult to comprehend events because, while I +could not help perceiving that the impulse leading to them came from +Russia, it was impossible to discover what prompted the government of +the czar. I felt the necessity to study the history of Russia, and +found it so fascinating, that I resolved to place it in a condensed +form before the students in our schools. They must be the judges of +how I have succeeded.</p> + +<p class="col50"><span class="smcap">R. Van Bergen</span>.</p> + + + +<h2>CONTENTS.</h2> + + +<p>CHAPTER</p> + +<ul><li><a href="#page013"><span class="smcap">The Realm of the Czar</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page023"><span class="smcap">Early Records of Russia</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page029"><span class="smcap">The Norsemen</span> (or <span class="smcap">Varingians) in Russia</span></a></li> + + +<li><a href="#page041"><span class="smcap">Saint Vladimir and Iaroslaf the Great</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page049"><span class="smcap">A Russian Republic</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page057"><span class="smcap">Troublous Times</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page063"><span class="smcap">The Yellow Peril</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page071"><span class="smcap">Russia Under the Mongol Yoke</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page079"><span class="smcap">Lithuania and Moscow</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page087"><span class="smcap">Decline of the Tartar Power. Dmitri Donskoï</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page097"><span class="smcap">Ivan III, the Great</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page106"><span class="smcap">Russia becomes an Autocracy</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page111"><span class="smcap">Ivan IV, the Terrible</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page122"><span class="smcap">Russia Under Ivan the Terrible</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page129"><span class="smcap">Feodor, the Last of Rurik's Descendants</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page137"><span class="smcap">Michael Feodorovitch (Son of Theodore) the First Romanof</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page145"><span class="smcap">Early Years of Peter the Great (Peter Alexievitch)</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page153"><span class="smcap">Peter the Great and His Reign</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page162"><span class="smcap">Peter the Great and His Time</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page173"><span class="smcap">The Successors of Peter the Great</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page183"><span class="smcap">Russia Under Catherine II (the Great)</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page194"><span class="smcap">Russia During the Wars of Napoleon</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page208"><span class="smcap">An Eventful Period</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page219"><span class="smcap">Alexander II, the Liberator</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page229"><span class="smcap">Great Events During Alexander's Reign Nihilism</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page241"><span class="smcap">Alexander III, the Peasants' Friend</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page251"><span class="smcap">Russia Methods: The War with Japan</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page259"><span class="smcap">The Origin and Growth of The Asiatic Empire</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page267"><span class="smcap">Russian Methods. The War with Japan</span></a></li> + +<li><a href="#page277"><span class="smcap">Russia Loses her Prestige</span></a></li> +</ul> + + + + + + + +<h2>THE STORY OF RUSSIA.</h2> + + + + +<h2>I—THE REALM OF THE CZAR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page013" name="page013"></a>(p. 013)</span></h2> + + +<p>When we think of our country, we feel proud of it for other and better +reasons than its great size. We know how its extent compares with that +of other nations; we know that the United States covers an area almost +equal to that of Europe, and, more favored than that Grand Division, +is situated on the two great highways of commerce, the Atlantic and +Pacific Oceans. Europe is as far from the latter, as Asia is from the +former; and these highways, powerful means toward creating prosperity, +remain at the same time barriers whereby nations that find greater +delight in the arts of war than in those of peace, are restrained from +disturbing our national progress.</p> + +<p>At the beginning of this twentieth century the nations upon which +depends the world's peace or war, happiness or misfortune, are the +United States, Great Britain, Germany, France, Austria-Hungary, Italy, +Russia, Japan, and in the near future China. Here we see that Europe, +although little larger in area than the United States, is represented +by seven nations, Asia by two, and the Western Hemisphere by one which +by its institutions stands <span class="pagenum"><a id="page014" name="page014"></a>(p. 014)</span> for peace and progress, for law +and order. Hence we, its citizens, are known all over the world as +Americans.</p> + +<p>If we compare the area occupied by the several European powers with +that covered by the main body of our republic, that is, not including +Alaska and other outlying territories, we find that Austria-Hungary +has four thousand square miles less than Texas, while Germany lacks +forty thousand square miles in comparison with the Lone Star State. +France is four thousand square miles less than Germany, and Italy is +only a thousand square miles greater than Nevada. The British Kingdom +in Europe is about twice the area of Illinois. Among the great nations +of the world, aside from outlying possessions beyond the Grand +Division, our country stands third, and should occupy the second +place, because China, the next larger, owes its greater area to +territories over which she has little or no control, and which she +seems destined to lose.</p> + +<p>The largest country is Russia, covering as it does one-sixth of all +the land on the earth. This empire, although inhabited by people +differing in race, religion, and customs, is one compact whole. It +embraces in Europe 2,113,000 square miles, or more than all other +European nations combined; its area in Asia is 6,672,000 square miles, +making a total of 8,785,000 square miles, or 2.8 times as many as the +main body of our country. All the people living in this immense +empire, whatever their race, religion, or language, obey the will of +<i>one man</i>. We, who dwell in our beloved country, yield obedience only +to the Law; but the laws are made by ourselves, and they <span class="pagenum"><a id="page015" name="page015"></a>(p. 015)</span> +allow us to do as we please, so long as we do not interfere with +others who have the same rights; and those laws are ever ready to +protect us. In Russia laws are made or unmade at the will of one +person who is himself above the laws. Every man, woman, or child, born +and living in that country, is at his mercy. Mere suspicion is +sufficient to drag a man from his family and home, perhaps to +disappear without leaving a trace. Such a government is called an +autocracy, and the man who may thus dispose of people's life and +property, is known as an Autocrat. Hence the title of the Emperor of +Russia is: Autocrat of All the Russias.</p> + +<p>Why "All the Russias"? Look at the map of Eurasia, the continent +embracing the two Grand Divisions Europe and Asia. You will see that +the Russian Empire is bounded on the north by the Arctic Ocean; on the +east by the Bering Strait, the Bering Sea, the Sea of Okhotsk, and the +Japan Sea; on the south by China, Pamir, Afghanistan, Persia, Asiatic +Turkey, and the Black Sea; and on the west by Roumania, +Austria-Hungary, the German Empire, the Baltic Sea, Sweden, and +Norway. This immense empire is the growth of many centuries, and even +in Europe it has not yet been welded into one whole. When we read +Russian books, we learn about Great and Little Russia, White and Red +Russia, which shows that divisions of bygone years are still observed +by the people. Much has been done towards effacing those boundary +lines; but the fact that the czar, autocrat though he is, recognizes +and admits the division in his title, shows that even he is, to some +extent, subject to public opinion.</p> + +<p>Russia <span class="pagenum"><a id="page016" name="page016"></a>(p. 016)</span> in Europe, however, with the exception of Poland and +Finland, is a country with one religion and one language; that is, the +czar and his government recognize and admit no other. That is the +cause of the persecution of the Jews, four fifths of whom dwell in the +southwest of Russia in an area covering 356,681 square miles, which is +sometimes mentioned as the Jewish territory. Every succeeding czar has +tried to make all his subjects think and act in the manner prescribed +by him. The process is known as "Russianizing," and goes on +incessantly in its different stages. Immediately after the conquest of +a country, its people are assured that their religion, institutions, +and language, shall be respected; the only difference is that the +native officials are displaced by Russians. This continues until +Russian rule is firmly established, and no one dreams of resisting the +czar. Then the Russian language displaces the native tongue, and if +disturbances occur, the military is called in to inflict a terrible +punishment. The loss of the native language carries with it that of +old institutions, and when the people have submitted to their fate, it +is the turn of their religion. The Russian is in no hurry; he has a +conviction that time has no changes in store for his empire, hence he +bides his time, and is likely to succeed in his purpose. This process +is now carried on in Central Asia where Russian power has found its +greatest expansion in modern times. It is but fair to admit that +Russian absorption there has been highly beneficial because robber +tribes were reduced to law and order.</p> + +<a id="img002" name="img002"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<a href="images/img002bg.jpg"> +<img src="images/img002.jpg" width="400" height="495" alt="Russia" title="Russia"></a> +</div> + +<p>Before telling the Story of Russia, that is, of how the huge empire +was formed and grew to its present size, it <span class="pagenum"><a id="page018" name="page018"></a>(p. 018)</span> is necessary to +become better acquainted with the aspect and nature of the country. +Looking at the map of the Eurasian continent, that is, the continent +embracing Europe and Asia, we cannot fail to notice that Russia is a +country of the plains. Its southern boundary seems to follow the +mountain barriers which divide Asia into two parts. Does it not seem +as if long billows of earth roll down toward the Arctic Ocean, where +they rest benumbed by the eternal cold? These mountains branch off +toward the south, east or west, but scorn to throw so much as a spur +northward. It is true that a solitary chain, the Urals, runs north and +south, but it stands by itself, and is nothing more than what the word +Ural signifies, a <i>belt</i> or <i>girdle</i> separating the European from his +Asiatic brother. These mountains do not form the backbone of a +country, nor do they serve as a watershed, like our Rocky Mountains or +the Andes of South America. Some of their peaks rise to a height of +6,000 feet above the level of the sea, but the chain, 1531 miles long, +seems destined only to keep the two races apart.</p> + +<p>Beyond the Ural mountains, the plain resumes its sway. This extensive +flat could not fail to exert a noticeable influence upon the country +and its inhabitants. The dense forests in the north, while acting as a +screen, do not afford protection against the icy polar winds which +sweep with scarcely diminished force over the broad expanse, so that +the northern shores of the Black and Caspian Seas in January have +about the same temperature as Stockholm, the capital of Sweden. The +mountains of Western Europe shut off the aërial current of the Gulf +Stream which tempers the summer heat as well as the winter <span class="pagenum"><a id="page019" name="page019"></a>(p. 019)</span> +cold. Russia's climate, therefore, is one of extremes. In summer the +heat is very oppressive, owing to the absence of the sea breeze which +elsewhere affords so much relief; and when a wind does blow, it only +adds to the discomfort, because it has lost its moisture. That is the +reason why Russia suffers so often from drought. This is especially +the case in the south where no forests are found to attract rain.</p> + +<p>Nature has provided a substitute in the splendid waterways. In about +the center of European Russia, rises the Valdai plateau to a height of +1,100 feet above the sea level. This is Russia's great watershed. Near +it, in Lake Volgo, rises the largest river of Europe, "Mother Volga," +as the Russian ballad singers love to call it. Its entire length is +2,336 miles, or nearly the length of the Missouri; it has a basin of +590,000 square miles. Owing to the slight slope of the land, the great +river flows placidly in its bed, which is fortunate since its Waters +are swollen by several large rivers, so that there are points where it +is seventeen miles wide. The Kama, one of the tributaries of the +Volga, is 1,266 miles long; the Oka, another confluent, has a length +of 633 miles. At Kazan, the Volga is 4,953 feet wide, at Jaroslaf +2,106 feet, and at Samara, 2,446 feet. It empties into the Caspian +Sea, with a delta of more than seventy branches. The fish caught in +this river often grow to gigantic proportions; its sturgeons, +lampreys, and salmon, are highly prized. Since time immemorial, the +Volga has been a great highway of trade. Kostroma, Nishni Novgorod, +Kazan, Simbirsk, Saratof, and Astrakhan, are the most populous cities +on its banks.</p> + +<p>Other <span class="pagenum"><a id="page020" name="page020"></a>(p. 020)</span> large rivers rise on the Valdai plateau. The Dnieper +runs south, passing by Kief, and empties in the Black Sea, near +Odessa. The Dwina runs northward, seeking the icy Arctic, which it +enters by way of the White Sea near Archangel. The Düna takes a +westerly course towards the Gulf of Riga where it empties near the +city of that name. Of greater importance are the small streams which +feed Lakes Ladoga and Onega, because they connect Central Russia with +the Baltic Sea by means of the Neva.</p> + +<p>European Russia is usually divided into four zones or belts, from the +character of the soil and the nature of its productions; their general +direction is from southwest to northeast. In the north, as a screen +against the Arctic blast, is the <i>poliessa</i> or forest region, densely +covered with lindens, birches, larches, and sycamores, with oaks on +the southern fringe. These forests are invaluable to Russia where, in +the absence of mountains, stone is scarce. The houses are built of +wood, and fires are of common occurrence. Both lumber and fuel are +supplied by these forests which originally extended to Novgorod, +Moscow, and Jaroslaf. The increase in population together with the +growing demand for lumber, have caused extensive clearings; but the +area covered by the forests is so large, that the supply is well-nigh +inexhaustible.</p> + +<p>South of this zone are the black earth lands, extending down to the +Caucasus and across the Urals, and covering in Europe an area of one +hundred and fifty million acres,—equal to that of Texas. This zone +derives its name from an apparently inexhaustible bed of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page021" name="page021"></a>(p. 021)</span> +black mold, so rich that no manure is required to produce abundant +crops. Until late in the last century, and before the United States +began to export its surplus harvests, this region was considered the +granary of Europe. It was known in very old times since we read of it +in the Heroic Age of Ancient Greece, when Jason sailed in the Argo to +bring home the Golden Fleece.</p> + +<p>Almost equal in extent is the zone of arable steppes, or prairies, +once the home of the Cossack, the nomad who led here the life of a +shepherd king, moving about as the condition of pasture and flock +required. Most of this land is now under cultivation, and with careful +farming produces good crops. These arable steppes cover an area equal +to that of Iowa, Kansas, and Nebraska.</p> + +<p>The fourth and last zone is that of the barren steppes. There is ample +evidence that at some remote time these plains were covered with salt +water. The Caspian Sea has a level eighty feet below that of the Black +Sea, and it is therefore probable that here was a large inland sea of +which the Caspian and Aral Seas are the remains. These steppes are +unfit for farming. Here dwell the Kalmucks and Kirghizes, descendants +of the Tartars whose yoke once pressed heavily upon Russia.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page022" name="page022"></a>(p. 022)</span> +<a id="img003" name="img003"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img003.jpg" width="500" height="354" alt="Russian Peasants" title="Russian Peasants"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Russian Peasants</p> + + + + +<h2>II—EARLY RECORDS OF RUSSIA. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page023" name="page023"></a>(p. 023)</span></h2> + + +<p>At an early period in the history of Greece, we hear of colonies +established on the northern shore of the Pontus Euxinus or Hospitable +Sea, as they named the Black Sea. We may even now recognize some of +the names of those colonies, such as Odessos, at the mouth of the Bug, +Tyras, at that of the Dniester, and Pityas where Colchis, the object +of the search of Jason and his fellow Argonauts, is supposed to have +been. In the fourth century before our era, some of these colonies +united under a hereditary <i>archon</i> or governor, probably for the +purpose of securing better protection against the barbarians who dwelt +further inland.</p> + +<p>The Greeks mention these barbarians as the Scythians, and divided them +into three classes. The agricultural Scythians dwelt in the black +earth belt, near the Dnieper; the nomad Scythians lived at some +distance to the east of them, and the royal Scythians occupied the +land around the Sea of Azof.</p> + +<p>Learned men of Russia have made many excavations on the spots where +the Greek settlements once stood, during the past century. They have +been rewarded by finding many works of art, illustrating the mode of +living <span class="pagenum"><a id="page024" name="page024"></a>(p. 024)</span> of the Scythians. They have been placed, and may be +seen in the Hermitage museum of St. Petersburg. Among these relics of +the past are two beautifully engraved vases, one of gold, the other of +silver. The Scythians on the silver vase wear long hair and beards, +and are dressed in gowns or tunics, and bear a close resemblance to +the Russians of our time. These vases and other ancient objects +confirm what is said about these people by Herodotus, a Greek +historian who lived in the fourth century before Christ.</p> + +<p>We learn from him that the Scythians worshiped a sword stuck into the +ground, representing the god of war, and that they made human +sacrifices. They drank the blood of the first enemy killed in battle, +scalped their prisoners, and used their skulls as drinking cups. In +the course of time the Greek civilization exerted its influence, and +penetrated to tribes dwelling much further in the north, as is shown +by the antiquities found in the government of Ekaterinoslaf.</p> + +<p>The <i>orbis terrarum</i> or world so far as it was known to the Greeks, +was centered about the Mediterranean; hence the name of that sea, +meaning Middle of the Land or Middle of the Earth. Beyond that there +was an unknown region, supposed to be inhabited by people of whom many +wonderful stories were told. Thus they believed in the existence of +the Arimaspians, a race of one-eyed people; there are legends, too, of +the Agrippei who were described as bald and snub-nosed. The Greeks +also mention the Gryphons, who, they said, were guardians of immense +quantities of gold. The most wonderful people to the Greeks were the +Hyperboreans, or dwellers beyond <span class="pagenum"><a id="page025" name="page025"></a>(p. 025)</span> the regions of the north +wind, who were looked upon with awe and pity because it was said that +they lived in a country where snow fell summer and winter. These were +some of the races and tribes supposed to inhabit Russia, which goes +far to prove that the knowledge of that country, in those times, was +neither extensive nor very accurate.</p> + +<p>The truth is that we know very little about the early inhabitants of +Russia; nor do they concern us greatly, because grave changes occurred +in the fourth century of our era. At that time several large and +warlike tribes of Central Asia moved westward compelling other tribes +on their route to join them or to move ahead. Thus they gathered +strength until it looked as if Asia was bent upon the conquest of +Europe. They poured in through the gap between the Ural mountains and +the Caspian Sea, and the civilized people of southeastern Europe were +unable to cope with the savage hordes. In the vanguard were the Goths, +who made an effort to settle, in Scythia, but they were forced to move +on when Attila, who is known as the Scourge of God, swooped down upon +them with his Huns. He was followed by a host of Finns, Bulgarians, +Magyars, and Slavs who, however, left his wake, scattered and settled +down. Soon after the Slavs became known to Greek authors and were +described by them. They were divided into a number of tribes, among +them the Russian Slavs who settled about the sources of the Volga and +the Oka, and were the founders of Novgorod, Pskof, and Izborsk.</p> + +<p>They must have been a numerous people. We hear of another tribe +settling on the banks of the Vistula, and laying <span class="pagenum"><a id="page026" name="page026"></a>(p. 026)</span> the +foundation of the future kingdom of Poland. They settled on the upper +Elbe, and in the north of Germany. It is believed that the Slavs are +ancestors of the people in Bohemia, Bulgaria, Croatia, Servia, and +Dalmatia, and in Prussia of those living in Pomerania and Brandenburg.</p> + +<p>All these Slavs, although widely dispersed, practiced the same heathen +rites, spoke the same language, and nursed the same traditions, until +they fell under different influences. They were, however, not the sole +occupants of northeastern Europe. Other races had followed in Attila's +wake, and among them the Finns were the most numerous and most +warlike. They settled in the basin of the Dwina and the Kama and named +their new home Biarmaland, while the Russians called it Great Permia. +They also occupied what is now known as Finland, but which was then +known as Land of the Suomi. The Finns, more than any other tribe, bore +evidence of their Asiatic origin.</p> + +<p>Thus the present European Russia was divided among a host of tribes, +belonging either to the Slav or Finn families, and each kept to a +great extent the superstitions and traditions of his race. Even in our +time the traces of these superstitions are plainly discernible in many +parts of Russia. When Christianity was introduced among these people, +the missionaries found many of the barbaric rites so strongly +implanted among the people that, instead of making vain efforts to +uproot them, they preferred to admit them under a Christian name.</p> + +<p>The religion of the Slavs bore a great resemblance to that of the +Norsemen and of the Germanic races; that is, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page027" name="page027"></a>(p. 027)</span> they worshiped +nature and its phenomena. Dagh Bog was the sungod; Perun, the Thor of +northern mythology, was the god of thunder; Stri Bog, the god of the +winds; Voloss, the protector of flocks. They had neither temples nor +regular priests, but worshiped the oak as the symbol of Perun, and +before it the leaders offered sacrifices. These ancient deities are +preserved under the names of St. John, who displaced Perun; Voloss who +became St. Vlaise, etc. When a chief died, the wife often refused to +survive her husband. The men-servants were summoned and asked which of +them would be buried with his master. When one of them came forward, +he was immediately strangled. Then the same question was put to the +women servants, and if one of them consented, she was feasted until +the day when the funeral pyre awaited the corpse. She was then killed +and her body burned with that of her master. There were, however, some +tribes that buried their dead.</p> + +<p>The father was absolute master of his family, but his authority did +not descend to the eldest son, but to the oldest of the family, his +brothers, if any were living, according to their age. The Slavs kept +several wives, and were given to consume large quantities of a strong +drink called kvass. They were a people devoted to agriculture; the +land under cultivation was not owned by one person or a family, but by +all the members of a community, or <i>mir</i>. The heads of the families +composing the mir assembled in a council or <i>vetché</i>, which had +authority over the mir. Only the house and the <i>dvor</i> or inclosure, +and his share in the harvest, were the property of each householder. +In the course of time, several of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page028" name="page028"></a>(p. 028)</span> these rural communities +united in a canton or county, called a <i>volost</i>, which was then +governed by a council composed of the elders of several communes. It +happened sometimes that one of these elders, who was considered +unusually wise or powerful, became chief of the volost, a dignity +which might become hereditary. This was probably the origin of the +boyards or nobles. As a rule, the volosts were proud of their +independence; they disliked entangling alliances, although in time of +danger or necessity they would enter into a confederacy of all the +counties belonging to the same tribe, which was then called <i>plemia</i>. +But it was always understood that such an arrangement was temporary. +In most of the volosts, there was at least one spot fortified by +earthen walls and wooden palisades, where the people might take refuge +in case of an attack.</p> + +<p>We know that some of the Slav tribes attained some degree of +civilization as early as the seventh century of our era. Novgorod was +a town, large for that time, which carried on a brisk trade with Asia. +This is amply proved by the discovery of Asiatic coins belonging to +that period. Although the favorite occupation of the Slavs was +agriculture, the construction of the fortified places suggests that +they were not averse to increase their wealth by an occasional raid +upon their unprepared neighbors. There is other evidence that +Novgorod, grown into a wealthy city in the middle of the ninth +century, longed for peace. No wonder that such a community sought for +means of security for its commerce. But the manner in which it +accomplished this desire, decided the fate of Russia.</p> + + + + +<h2>III—THE NORSEMEN (OR VARINGIANS) IN RUSSIA. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page029" name="page029"></a>(p. 029)</span></h2> + + +<p>It would have been strange indeed, if the bold Norsemen, the bold +buccaneers who in their frail craft pillaged the west coasts of Europe +and extended their voyages into the Mediterranean, should have omitted +to pay a visit to the shores of the Baltic Sea. We know that they +settled in England and France, and it causes no surprise when we read +that the Slavs in the neighborhood of the Baltic paid tribute to them. +They must have been exacting tax collectors, because we read also +that, in 859, the Slavs rose and expelled their visitors. Three years +later they returned at the invitation of the people of Novgorod.</p> + +<p>Nestor, the historian of the Slav race, who lived in the twelfth +century, and whose account is remarkably clear and trustworthy, wrote +that the inhabitants of Novgorod "said to the princes of Varingia, +'Our land is great and fertile, but it lacks order and justice; come, +take possession, and govern us.'"</p> + +<p>The invitation was accepted. Three brothers, Rurik or the Peaceful, +Sineous or the Victorious, and Truvor or the Faithful, proceeded to +Russia with their families and fighting men. Rurik settled on the +south shore of Lake Ladoga, Sineous on the White Lake, and Truvor at +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page030" name="page030"></a>(p. 030)</span> Izborsk. The two younger brothers died, and Rurik moved to +Novgorod where he built a castle. At about the same time two other +Norsemen, Askold and Dir, landed in Russia, and went to Kief, then +also a flourishing city, where they were equally well received. They +persuaded its people to prepare an expedition against Czargrad, the +City of the Czar or Emperor of the Eastern Roman Empire, now known as +Constantinople, but at that time named Byzantium. The expedition of +Kief under Askold and Dir sailed down the Dnieper in a fleet of 200 +large boats, entered the Golden Horn—or Bosphorus,—and began the +siege of Constantinople. The capital was saved by the Patriarch or +head of the Greek Church, who plunged a wonder-working robe into the +waves, whereupon a violent storm destroyed the Russian fleet.</p> + +<p>The two chiefs, Askold and Dir, must have escaped, because they were +back at Kief when that city received a disagreeable visit. Upon +Rurik's death, he was succeeded, not by his son Igor, but by his +brother Oleg as the eldest of the family. The new prince or <i>kniaz</i> +did not approve of rival Norsemen in his neighborhood. With his own +men and a large number of Slavs and Finns, he marched upon Kief, and +on his way compelled Smolensk and Loubetch to submit to his authority.</p> + +<p>When he arrived before Kief, he succeeded in capturing Askold and Dir +who were put to death "because," Oleg explained, "they were neither +princes themselves, nor of the blood of princes." Kief was taken, and +Oleg took up his residence in that city.</p> + +<a id="img004" name="img004"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img004.jpg" width="500" height="366" alt="Norsemen" title="Norsemen"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Norsemen</p> + +<p>It is at this time that the name Russia first appears. Its <span class="pagenum"><a id="page032" name="page032"></a>(p. 032)</span> +derivation is doubtful and is, besides, of no great importance. Oleg +ruled over Russia, that is, the plain extending from Kief to Novgorod. +There is a story that he was defeated by the Hungarians, who had +crossed the Dnieper, but it is doubtful, because in the year 907, we +find him preparing another expedition against Constantinople. On this +occasion the people of that capital forgot to bring out the robe, and +tried to poison the invaders, but their scheme was discovered in time; +they were forced to pay a heavy tribute and Oleg secured, besides, a +very advantageous commercial treaty.</p> + +<p>One of the wizards at Oleg's court had warned him that his favorite +horse would be the cause of his death, and the animal was kept away +from him until it died. Oleg did not believe in wizards; he insisted +upon seeing the body and entered the stable. A snake came out of the +horse's skull and stung Oleg in the foot, and he died from the effect +of the poison.</p> + +<p>Igor, Rurik's son, was the eldest, and succeeded his uncle. He led +another expedition against Constantinople, but it ended in disaster, +because the Russian fleet was destroyed by Greek fire. A large number +of Russians were captured but Igor escaped. This failure did not +prevent him from again attacking the Byzantine Empire, and this time +he was successful. The emperor agreed to pay tribute and signed +another commercial treaty.</p> + +<p>Nestor, the Russian historian, tells us the story of Igor's death. "In +the year 945," he says, "the <i>drujina</i>" (that is, the body-guard, +composed of Norsemen or their descendants), "of Igor said to him, 'The +men of Sveneld are richly provided with weapons and garments, while +we <span class="pagenum"><a id="page033" name="page033"></a>(p. 033)</span> go in rags; lead us, Prince, to collect the tribute so +that thou and we may become rich.' Igor consented, and conducted them +to the Drevlians to raise the tribute. He increased the first imposts, +and did them violence, he and his men; after having taken all he +wanted, he returned to his city. While on the road he bethought +himself and said to his drujina, 'Go on with the tribute; I will go +back and try to get some more out of them.' Leaving the greater part +of his men to go on their way, he returned with only a few, to the end +that he might increase his riches. The Drevlians, when they learnt +that Igor was coming back, held council with Nal, their prince. 'When +the wolf enters the sheepfold he slays the whole flock, if the +shepherd does not slay him. Thus it is with us and Igor; if we do not +destroy him, we are lost.' Then they sent deputies who said to him, +'why dost thou come anew unto us? Hast thou not collected all the +tribute?' But Igor would not hear them, so the Drevlians came out of +the town of Korosthenes, and slew Igor and his men, for they were but +a few."</p> + +<p>The drujina or body-guard of the duke was at the same time his +council. The men composing it were considered as members of his +family; they ate at his table and shared his amusements as well as his +toil. He did nothing without consulting them, and was really but the +first among his peers. They formed a court of justice, and it was from +among them that he appointed the voievods or governors of fortresses, +and possadniks or commandants of large towns. We have a description of +the courts of that time by an Arab writer named Ibn Dost. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page034" name="page034"></a>(p. 034)</span> He +says: "When a Russian brings a complaint against another, he summons +him before the court of the prince where both state their case. When +the prince has pronounced his verdict, his orders are executed; but if +both parties are dissatisfied, the dispute must be decided by weapons. +He whose sword cuts sharper, gains his cause. At the time of the +fight, the relatives of the two adversaries appear armed, and surround +the space set apart. The combatants then come to blows, and the victor +may impose any terms he pleases."</p> + +<p>The people of the country, the peasants, were not quite so free as +when Rurik landed. They began to be known as <i>moujik</i>, a contemptuous +diminutive of the word mouj or man, literally manikin. The merchants +or <i>gosti</i> did not form a distinct class, but in larger cities, such +as Novgorod and Kief, they had a voice in the administration. These +cities had a vetché or municipal council which directed the city's +business without any direct interference from the prince. The +successors of Rurik attended to the defense of the country, the +administration of justice, and the collection of tribute and taxes, +which sources of revenue were appropriated by them and served for +their support and for that of the drujina.</p> + +<p>The Slavs of that time exhibited many characteristics which we +recognize in the Russians of our time. Leo the Deacon, a noted writer +of that time, mentions that they fought in a compact body, and seemed +like a wall of iron, bristling with lances, glittering with shields, +whence rang a ceaseless clamor like the waves of the sea. A huge +shield covered them to their feet, and, when they fought in retreat, +they turned this enormous buckler on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page035" name="page035"></a>(p. 035)</span> their backs and became +invulnerable. The fury of the battle frenzied them. They were never +seen to surrender. When victory was lost they stabbed themselves, for +they believed that those who died by the hand of an enemy were +condemned to serve him in the life after death. The emperors of +Byzantium were glad to secure their services, and the <i>ross</i>, as they +called them, often formed the body-guard. In the Byzantine expedition +against Crete, 700 Russians served in the army.</p> + +<p>The Norsemen readily adapted themselves to the habits, customs, and +language of the people among whom they settled. We find the Norse +names of Rurik, Oleg, and Igor, but after the last named their +descendants were Russians and bore Russian names.</p> + +<p>At Igor's death his son Sviatoslaf was still a minor, whose mother, +Olga, became Regent. She was a woman of determination, whose first +thought was to avenge the death of her husband. The Drevlians, hearing +of her preparations, sent two deputations to appease her: not a man +returned. They were all put to death at her command. Nestor tells us +that Olga herself commanded her warriors at the siege of Korosthenes, +and that she offered to make peace on payment of a tribute of three +pigeons and three sparrows for every house. This was accepted and the +birds were delivered, when she ordered lighted tow to be fastened to +their tails, and when they flew back to the wooden town, they set fire +to the houses and barns. Korosthenes was then captured and a great +number of its inhabitants were slaughtered and the rest were made +slaves.</p> + +<p>It seems strange that such a woman should have been the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page036" name="page036"></a>(p. 036)</span> +first of Rurik's house to embrace Christianity. There is no doubt that +she visited Constantinople where she astonished the emperor by the +force of her character. She was baptized and received the name of +Helen. It is quite possible that she came to Constantinople for that +purpose, because we read that she refused to be baptized at Kief "for +fear of the pagans." This confirms the Greek records in which it is +stated that a bishop was established in Russia, probably at Kief, in +the time of Oleg.</p> + +<p>It is not strange that Christianity should have taken root in Russia +after the frequent wars with the Byzantine Empire, and considering the +commerce carried on between Kief and Constantinople. Missionaries +entered Russia at an early period. Two of them, Cyril and Methodius, +prepared a Slavonic alphabet, in which many Greek letters were used, +and the Bible was translated into that language. There is a tradition +that Askold was baptized after his defeat at Constantinople, and that +this is the reason why the people still worship at his tomb at Kief, +as of that of the first Christian prince. The Norsemen had no taste +for persecution on account of religious belief, but for themselves +they clung to the heathen deities. When Igor swore to observe the +treaty concluded with Emperor Leo VI, he went up to the hill of Perun +and used the ancient Slavonic rites; but the emperor's deputies went +to the church of St. Elias, and there laid their hands upon the Bible +as a token of good faith.</p> + +<p>The drujina and warriors did not take kindly to Christianity. They, as +well as the peasants, preferred to worship Perun and Voloss. The same +thing happened elsewhere. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page037" name="page037"></a>(p. 037)</span> Christianity made the greatest +progress in cities, whereas the dwellers on the "heath" remained +"heathen." "When one of the warriors of the prince wished to become a +convert," says Nestor, "he was not prevented; they simply laughed at +him." When Olga returned from Constantinople, she was anxious that her +son, who was of age and had succeeded to his father, should follow her +example. Sviatoslaf refused; "my men will laugh at me," was his usual +answer. Nestor mentions that he sometimes lost his temper. +Christianity did not make much progress during his reign.</p> + +<p>He was a warrior, like his Norse ancestors. In the brief time of eight +years, 964-972, he found time to wage two wars. The first was with the +Khazar empire on the Don. Sviatoslaf captured its capital, the White +City, and received tribute from two tribes of the Caucasus. The second +war did not turn out so well.</p> + +<p>From Nestor's account and that of Leo the Deacon, it appears that the +Byzantine emperor, wishing to make use of Sviatoslaf, decided to find +out what sort of man he was. He therefore sent him presents of gold +and fine clothes, but the grandson of Rurik would scarcely look at +them and told his warriors to take them away. When the emperor heard +this, he sent him a fine sword and other weapons; these were accepted +with every token of satisfaction by Sviatoslaf. When the emperor was +informed of the result, he exclaimed: "This must be a fierce man, +because he despises wealth and accepts a sword as tribute."</p> + +<p>This did not prevent the emperor, who had a private quarrel with +Peter, Czar of Bulgaria, from urging Sviatoslaf <span class="pagenum"><a id="page038" name="page038"></a>(p. 038)</span> to make war +upon his enemy. The Russian gave a hearty consent, and in a very short +time he captured several fortresses and Peréiaslaf, the capital, fell +into his hands. He determined to transfer his capital there, and when +he returned to Kief, he told his mother of the city on the Danube. +"The place," he said, "is the central point of my territory, and +abounds in wealth. Precious goods, gold, wine, and all kinds of fruit, +come from Greece. Silver and horses are brought from the country of +the Czechs and Hungarians, and the Russians bring money, furs, wax, +and slaves."</p> + +<p>Meanwhile the emperor of Constantinople was dead; his successor, John +Zimisces was a very different man, who preferred having a weak +Bulgarian ruler as his neighbor, instead of an empire which, even at +that time, extended from Lakes Ladoga and Onega to the Balkans. He, +therefore, made up his mind to oust the Russians. Sviatoslaf had left +Bulgaria, but he returned and reconquered it, when he received a +demand from the new emperor to execute the treaty entered into with +his predecessor, that is, to leave Bulgaria. Sviatoslaf replied +proudly that he expected to visit the emperor at Constantinople before +long, but Zimisces, a brave and able man, took measures to prevent it. +Before Sviatoslaf expected him, Zimisces attacked and defeated the +Russians in the defiles of the Balkan, and soon after stormed and +captured Peréiaslaf. Eight thousand Russians withdrew into the castle, +which they defended heroically. They refused to surrender and, when +the castle was set on fire, they perished in the flames.</p> + +<p>When Sviatoslaf heard of this disaster, he advanced against <span class="pagenum"><a id="page039" name="page039"></a>(p. 039)</span> +the emperor. The Greek historian says that the Russian army was 60,000 +men strong, but Nestor gives the number at 10,000. The two armies met +and both fought with desperate valor, but at last the Russians gave +way before the furious charges of the Greek cavalry—the +Ironsides—and withdrew to Dorostol. Zimisces started in pursuit, and +laid siege to the city where the same courage was displayed. After +Sviatoslaf drew his men up out of the city and prepared to give +battle, Zimisces proposed to him to decide the issue by a personal +fight, but the offer was declined. "I know better than my enemy what I +have to do," said Sviatoslaf. "If he is weary of life, there are a +thousand ways by which he can end his days." The battle ended in +defeat for the Russians who, Leo the Deacon tells us, left 15,500 +dead, and 20,000 shields on the battlefield. Sviatoslaf was compelled +to come to terms. Zimisces permitted him and what remained of his army +to return to Russia, after he had sworn by Perun and Voloss that he +would never again invade the empire, but would help in defending it +against its enemies. If he broke his oath, he wished that he might +"become as yellow as gold, and perish by his own arms." Zimisces +showed the nobility of a brave man. He sent messengers to a warlike +tribe requesting a free passage for the Russians; but this tribe was +anxious to seize the opportunity. Sviatoslaf and his men were attacked +near the Cataracts of the Dnieper; he was killed, but most of his men +escaped. (A.D. 972.)</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page040" name="page040"></a>(p. 040)</span> +<a id="img005" name="img005"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img005.jpg" width="400" height="427" alt="Vladimir" title="Vladimir"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Vladimir</p> + + + + +<h2>IV—SAINT VLADIMIR AND IAROSLAF THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page041" name="page041"></a>(p. 041)</span></h2> + + +<p>Sviatoslaf had divided the empire among his three sons; he left +Novgorod to Vladimir, the eldest; Oleg, the second, was made prince of +the Drevlians, and the youngest, Iaropolk, received Kief. As happens +often, none of the three was satisfied with his share, and civil wars +followed. Oleg was killed by Iaropolk, whereupon the youngest son of +Sviatoslaf was slain by his brother Vladimir, who thus became the sole +heir and successor to his father. His first act was to make war upon +Poland. He compelled it to restore Red Russia or Old Gallicia, a +territory in our time divided into seven governments, or provinces. He +also reduced two revolted tribes, and forced the Lithuanians and +Livonians to pay tribute.</p> + +<p>At the beginning of his reign, Vladimir showed an unusual devotion to +the old Slav gods. He erected idols on the sandy cliffs of Kief; that +of Perun had a head of silver and a beard of gold. It seems that after +some time he became displeased with this religion and, Nestor tells +us, he grew anxious to know what religion was the best. He, therefore, +sent deputies to Bulgaria to study the Moslem or Mohammedan creed, and +to the Khazars, who <span class="pagenum"><a id="page042" name="page042"></a>(p. 042)</span> occupied the plain between the Bug and +the Volga, to make inquiries about the Jewish faith. From the Poles +and Germans he wanted to know all about the Roman Catholic Church, and +at Constantinople he expected to learn of the Greek faith. When these +deputies returned and reported to him, Vladimir selected the Greek +Church, which choice was approved by his drujina; "if the Greek +religion had not been the best, your grandmother Olga, the wisest of +mortals, would not have adopted it," said they. Thus Vladimir became a +convert; but his method of showing it was rather peculiar.</p> + +<p>He might have been baptized by the bishop of Kief; or, if he had +applied at Constantinople, the emperor would gladly have sent him a +high prelate to perform the service. Instead of this, Vladimir +collected an army and marched against Kherson,—the last city in +Russia held by the Byzantine. It was taken by means of treachery, and +from this city Vladimir sent to Constantinople to demand in marriage +the sister of the two emperors Basil and Constantine. Although the +emperors did not like the proposed connection, they consented because +they feared an invasion, but made it a condition that Vladimir should +be baptized. The ceremony was performed at Kherson; soon after the +bride arrived and the marriage took place in the same city. When he +returned to Kief, he carried with him the priests and sacred ornaments +taken from the churches of Kherson.</p> + +<p>Upon his return to Kief, he began missionary work by his own peculiar +methods. His first orders were to pull down the idols; during the +execution the people wept, moaned, and wrung their hands. Perun's +image was handsomely <span class="pagenum"><a id="page043" name="page043"></a>(p. 043)</span> flogged and thrown into the Dnieper. +Since it was made of wood, it soon came to the surface, which was +looked upon as a miracle by the people who rushed down to worship it. +But Vladimir's soldiers gave it another bath, and this time it was +caught by the current and drifted away. The cliff where it stood is +still known at Kief as "the devil's leap," and the spot where Perun +floated ashore, is shown to visitors.</p> + +<p>After thus getting rid of the idols, Vladimir commanded the people of +Kief, men, women, and children, to plunge into the Dnieper, which had +been consecrated for the occasion, that they might be baptized. When +they had obeyed his order, the priests read the service, so that after +entering into the river as heathen, they left it as Christians. The +people of Novgorod were converted in the same swift and practical +manner, since no attention was paid to their objections.</p> + +<p>Heathen temples were next converted into churches, which were +decorated by Greek artists. Vladimir erected at Kief the church of St. +Basil, on the place where Perun's image had stood. Numerous other +churches were built; he also founded schools where the Bible was +taught in the Slav language. At first the people objected to send +their children, because they looked upon reading and writing as magic. +But Vladimir had persuasive ways, and was not likely to be deterred by +such opposition. Nestor admired him very much. He says that Vladimir +was a different man after he had been converted; that he was so afraid +of committing a sin, that he hesitated to inflict capital punishment, +until the bishop reminded him that crime must be punished. He also +divided his income <span class="pagenum"><a id="page044" name="page044"></a>(p. 044)</span> among the churches, and thus became the +Saint Vladimir of Russia. Popular ballads keep alive the memory of the +first Christian prince. He is often mentioned in them as "The +Beautiful Sun" of Kief.</p> + +<p>It cannot be supposed that the Russian people were converted at once +into good Christians by Vladimir's forceful method. Several centuries +were to pass away before the peasants could be induced to part with +their heathen customs. The priests preferred to let them remain under +a Christian name. There is something mystic in the Slav character. He +nurses the belief in magicians and sorcerers, which has never been +uprooted. It is seen at present in the worship of the <i>eikon</i> or +saint's image.</p> + +<p>Vladimir died in 1015. He, too, divided Russia among his numerous +sons. One of them, Iaroslaf, received Novgorod, where he began to +interfere with the rights of the people. A deputation of leading +citizens came to him with a protest. He ordered their arrest and +condemned them to death. Meanwhile Vladimir's other heirs had indulged +in the usual quarrels and wars, until it seemed as if Sviatopolk, a +nephew, would become the sole ruler. Iaroslaf then called the +principal people of Novgorod together, and threw himself upon their +generosity. They forgave him and promised their support. They kept +their word, and after a long and bloody war he entered Kief as his +father's successor.</p> + +<p>Iaroslaf was unfortunate in a war with the Byzantine Empire. The +Russian fleet was badly defeated in the Bosphorus; 8,000 men were +killed, and 800 prisoners were taken to Constantinople.</p> + +<p>Of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page045" name="page045"></a>(p. 045)</span> greater importance was Iaroslaf's work at home. He built +churches and monasteries; St. Sophia church was the pride of Kief; the +monastery of The Catacombs still draws pilgrims from all parts of +Russia. Kief became known as "the city of four hundred churches." He +also founded a school for three hundred boys at Novgorod, thereby +showing that Russia at that time was second to no European nation.</p> + +<p>Kief, under his reign, was one of the most prosperous cities. This was +due to her situation on the Dnieper and her trade with the Byzantine +Empire, to the great fertility of the Black Earth land, and to +Iaroslaf's connection by marriage with the reigning families of +Europe. Of his daughters Elizabeth was the wife of the King of Norway, +Anne of the King of France, and Anastasia of the King of Hungary; his +sister Mary was married to the King of Poland, and his sons had +married into royal families. Merchants from Holland, Germany, Hungary, +and Scandinavia were established at Kief. The Dnieper was alive with +merchant vessels, and she counted eight markets. It is evident that +Iaroslaf took pains to protect and advance commerce. He had coins +minted with his Slav name on one side, and his Christian name Ioury +(George), on the other.</p> + +<p>Perhaps his greatest work is the code of laws established by him, +known as the <i>Russkaïa Pravda</i> or Russian Right. Though necessarily +primitive, it was a long step in advance of that time. It followed +chiefly the ideas of right and wrong according to the conceptions of +the Scandinavians.</p> + +<p>At this time, although the dignity of <i>kniaz</i>, duke or prince, +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page046" name="page046"></a>(p. 046)</span> was hereditary in the family of Rurik, it was understood by +all parties that the reign of the prince depended upon the consent of +his subjects, and perhaps more still upon that of his drujina. A story +is told that in Vladimir's time the drujina complained that they were +made to eat from wooden bowls, whereupon he gave them silver ones, +saying: I could not buy myself a drujina with gold and silver; but +with a drujina, I can acquire gold and silver, as did my father and my +grandfather.</p> + +<p>Ever since Kief had been the residence of Rurik's descendants, they +had been recognized as Grand Dukes, because they represented the +eldest of the descendants. They did not, as a rule, interfere with the +administration, but were the dukes, the commanders of the armies. Many +districts had such a duke, who was, however, invariably of the blood +of Rurik, and recognized the superior authority as the eldest of the +blood. When the Grand Duke of Kief died, he was not succeeded by his +son, unless he had neither uncle nor brother living; but it was within +the power of the grand duke to leave one or more districts to his +sons.</p> + +<p>The descendants of the Norsemen were, therefore, the defenders of the +districts which they ruled as dukes. Novgorod and Pskof were republics +on the northwest frontier, and usually had the same duke. Smolensk was +an important dukedom, because it contained the sources of the Volga, +the Dnieper, and the Dwina, and embraced the ancient forest of Okof. +Not far from it was the dukedom of Toropetz. On the Upper Oka was +Tchernigof—a rival of Kief; further to the south was Novgorod-Swerki, +and east of the Upper Don, extending as far <span class="pagenum"><a id="page047" name="page047"></a>(p. 047)</span> as the Oka, were +Riazan and Mourom. The dukedom of Souzdal, inhabited by a mixture of +Finns and Slavs, was in the north, the soil still covered by forests. +Southeast Russia embraced Red Russia, that is Volhynia and Gallicia +Proper.</p> + +<p>The introduction of the Greek Church caused important changes. The +Greek Priests could not comprehend the relation between the people and +its defenders. To them the duke was not a <i>dux</i> (leader), but a Cæsar, +Kaiser, or Czar, ruling, not with the consent of the governed, but by +the grace of God, as did the emperors at Constantinople. This idea +gradually penetrated into the minds of the several dukes, until it was +accepted and enforced by them.</p> + +<p>Another very important change was effected by the Greek religion. We +have seen that according to the old Slav customs, it was not the son +who succeeded as the head of the family, but its eldest member. It +appears that the same custom prevailed among the Norsemen, as we have +seen that it was Rurik's brother, and not his son who succeeded him. +In the Byzantine Empire, the oldest son was the heir, and the priests +tried to introduce this as a law.</p> + +<p>As the descendants of Rurik increased in number, it was not always +easy to determine who was entitled to the succession. Hence there were +often several claimants, and as a result, civil wars followed. These +wars, strange as it may appear, served to bind the dukedoms together, +because most of them were waged for the purpose of establishing the +claim of a duke upon the possession of Kief.</p> + +<p>Iaroslaf <span class="pagenum"><a id="page048" name="page048"></a>(p. 048)</span> died in 1054, and was buried in the church of St. +Sophia at Kief. In his will we see the effect of the Greek Church, for +he specially appointed his eldest son Isiaslaf as his successor. A +younger brother, Sviatoslaf, took up arms, and expelled him in 1073. +Upon his death in 1076, Isiaslaf returned to Kief, where he lived two +years. He died in 1078, and was succeeded by his brother Vsevolod, who +was grand duke until 1093, when he was succeeded by Sviatopolk, the +son of Isiaslaf, as the eldest of the family. He was not opposed by +Vsevolod's famous son Vladimir Monomachus, who admitted that +Sviatopolk's "father was older than mine, and reigned first in Kief."</p> + + + + + +<h2>V—A RUSSIAN REPUBLIC. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page049" name="page049"></a>(p. 049)</span></h2> + + +<p>Sviatopolk reigned from 1093 to 1113. It was at this time that Russia +was disturbed by two civil wars. At the instance of Vladimir +Monomachus a congress of dukes met in 1097, at Loubetch on the Dnieper +to discuss the folly of civil wars which placed the country at the +mercy of its enemies. An agreement was concluded, wherein the dukes +swore upon the Cross that "henceforth the Russian land shall be +considered the country of us all, and whoso shall dare arm himself +against his brother, shall be our common enemy."</p> + +<p>Soon after this a quarrel broke out about the succession of Volhynia, +and again the country was plunged into civil strife, which lasted two +years. In 1100 another congress was held at Vititchevo, on the left +bank of the Dnieper, where the dispute was settled, and it was +resolved to unite in a war with a powerful nomad people. The Russians +under Vladimir Monomachus gained a brilliant victory; the nomads had +seventeen khans killed on the battlefield.</p> + +<p>When Sviatopolk died, the people of Kief declared that they would have +no grand duke except Vladimir. He declined saying that there were +elder heirs entitled to the succession; but when troubles broke out in +the city, he gave <span class="pagenum"><a id="page050" name="page050"></a>(p. 050)</span> his consent. During his reign of twelve +years, from 1113 to 1125, Kief reached the height of prosperity and +power. He reduced Souzdal, in the north, to submission, and made many +improvements. His memory is cherished in Russia. He compiled a set of +instructions for his sons, from which we may judge of his character. +Among other remarks, he says: "It is neither by fasting, nor solitude, +nor the life in a cloister that will procure for you the life +eternal,—it is doing good. Do not forget the poor but feed them. Do +not bury your wealth in the bosom of the earth, for that is contrary +to the precepts of Christianity. Be a father to orphans, judge the +cause of widows yourself." "Put to death no one be he innocent or +guilty, for nothing is more precious than the soul of a Christian." +"When you have learned anything useful, try to preserve it in your +memory, and strive ceaselessly to acquire knowledge. Without ever +leaving his palace, my father spoke five languages, <i>a thing that +foreigners admire in us</i>."</p> + +<p>There are in the museum at Moscow, a throne and crown, supposed to +have belonged to this noble and patriotic duke; unfortunately it has +been shown that they were never in his possession.</p> + +<p>In his will, Vladimir gave the dukedom of Souzdal to his son George +Dolgorouki, and another son, Mstislaf, succeeded as grand duke at +Kief. When the latter died in 1146, leaving the grand dukedom to his +son Isiaslaf, George Dolgorouki claimed the succession as the eldest +of the family. Both sides were supported by their friends, and some +fierce battles were fought, but Isiaslaf maintained himself until his +death in 1157. After his reign, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page051" name="page051"></a>(p. 051)</span> Kief's importance began to +decrease. Twelve years later, in 1169, it was captured by the Russians +of the north. A native historian<a id="footnotetag1" name="footnotetag1"></a><a href="#footnote1">[1]</a> says of this event: "This mother +of Russian cities had been many times besieged and oppressed. She had +often opened her Golden Gate to her enemies, but none had ever yet +entered by force. To their eternal shame, the victors forgot that +they, too, were Russians! During three days not only the houses, but +the cloisters, churches, and even the temples of St. Sophia and the +Dîme, were given over to pillage. The precious images, the sacerdotal +ornaments, the books, and the bells,—all were carried off."</p> + +<p>With the fall of Kief, the scene of Russian activity shifts to the +north. There, in the dukedom of Souzdal, George Dolgorouki laid, in +1147, the foundation of a town, Moscow, on a height overlooking the +Moscowa. For many years it remained an obscure village, and gave no +sign of its future greatness.</p> + +<p>The chief interest at this time centers about the Russian republics, +Novgorod, Pskof, and Viatka. Although Novgorod did not possess the +advantages of Kief, since its soil was sandy, marshy, and +unproductive, the enterprise of its people made it the wealthiest and +most populous city of Russia. It is recorded that it counted 100,000 +inhabitants, when Rurik arrived in Russia. He and his immediate +successors were satisfied with the position of Defender, which suited +their warlike and blunt character, and with the revenues assigned to +them, which with the spoils taken from the enemy, were ample for their +wants. These republics were administered by a vetché or <span class="pagenum"><a id="page052" name="page052"></a>(p. 052)</span> +municipal council, with a possadnik or burgomaster, whose duty it was +to see that the city's privileges were preserved, and who distributed +the taxes. He shared with the duke in the administration of justice. +There was a militia for the defense of the people's rights, commanded +by a <i>tysatski</i>. Every ward of the city had a <i>starost</i>, charged with +preserving the peace. It is said that a written constitution, +partaking of the nature of the Magna Charta, was granted to Novgorod +by Iaroslaf the Great. The duke's rights and privileges, his duties +and his revenues, were carefully set down. He was entitled to the +tribute of some of the volosts,—cantons or counties,—and to certain +fines; he could gather in his harvests at stated times, and was not +permitted to hunt in the forest except in the autumn. He could neither +execute nor annul a judgment without the approval of the possadnik, +and he was expressly forbidden to carry a lawsuit beyond Novgorod. +Every duke, before he entered upon his office, was compelled to take +an oath to this constitution.</p> + +<p>The members of the vetché were elected by a unanimous vote, instead of +by a majority. This gave rise to frequent, and sometimes very serious +disorder, because if a minority did not approve of the candidate, they +were apt to be ill-treated. There were occasions when two rival +vetchés were elected, and when this happened in the two parts of the +city divided by the river Volkhof, the bridge between them was often +the scene of a free fight. Owing to the extensive trade connections, +the merchants trading with western Europe by way of the Baltic sought +to promote friendly relations with the dukes of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page053" name="page053"></a>(p. 053)</span> the west, +who had it in their power to promote or obstruct their trade; but the +merchants dealing with Asia, and those who connected with +Constantinople had other interests to consider and to guard. Thus +there were often three parties, each concerned with its own interests, +and forgetting that their prosperity was first and chiefly dependent +upon the power of the republic, they rendered it an easy prey for an +ambitious duke. The people, however, boasted of their patriotism, and +during the early period they were strong enough to defy the duke. On +some occasions, he and his drujina were expelled, or, as they +expressed it, "the people made him a reverence, and showed him a way +to leave." Sometimes, too, it happened that the duke was made a +prisoner, and confined in the Archbishop's palace. When Sviatopolk was +Grand Duke of Kief (1093-1113), he wished to force one of his sons +upon the people of Novgorod. "Send him along," said they, "if he has a +head to spare!" Usually the duke was glad to leave Novgorod, if he +could secure another dukedom. In 1132, Vsevolod Gabriel left Novgorod +to become Duke of Peréiaslaf, hoping to succeed as Grand Duke of Kief. +Seeing no way to attain the coveted dignity, he signified his wish to +return to the people of Novgorod. "You have forgotten your oath to die +with us," they replied; "you have sought another dukedom; now you may +go where you please." In this case, however, the people changed their +mind, and did take him back; but four years afterwards they expelled +him, declaring that "he took no care of the poor people; he desired to +establish himself at Peréiaslaf; at the battle of Mount Idanof against +the men of Souzdal, he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page054" name="page054"></a>(p. 054)</span> and his drujina were the first to +leave the battlefield; he was fickle in the quarrels of the dukes, +sometimes joining one party and sometimes the other."</p> + +<p>So long as the descendants of Rurik remained satisfied with their +position, Novgorod had enough men and resources to maintain its +independence; but more than that was required after the dukes had +tasted of the sweets of unlimited power.</p> + +<p>George Dolgorouki had established colonies in Souzdal. The land was +his, the colonists were his subjects. He was no longer merely the +defender, he was the owner, not the duke, but the prince. There was no +vetché or popular assembly in his possessions. His son, Andrew +Bogolioubski, was brought up and educated amid these conditions, more +in conformity with those prevailing in Greece and other parts of +Europe, where the people were supposed to exist for the sole benefit +of their prince. It was he who ruined Kief, and the fall of that city +foretold the doom of Novgorod. "The fall of Kief," says a Russian +author,<a id="footnotetag2" name="footnotetag2"></a><a href="#footnote2">[2]</a> "seemed to foreshadow the loss of Novgorod liberty; it was +the same army, and it was the same prince who commanded it. But the +people of Kief, accustomed to change their masters,—to sacrifice the +vanquished to the victors,—only fought for the honor of their dukes, +while those of Novgorod were to shed their blood for the defense of +the laws and institutions established by their ancestors."</p> + +<p>During his father's life, Andrew left his castle on the Dnieper, and +moved northward to Vladimir which town he enlarged, and where he +founded a quarter named Bogolioubovo, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page055" name="page055"></a>(p. 055)</span> whence his name of +Bogolioubski. After the death of George Dolgorouki, Andrew first made +a successful campaign against the Bulgarians, and then, after sacking +Kief, he turned his attention toward Novgorod, where he had +established one of his nephews. The cause of the quarrel is not known, +but Andrew began by compelling the neighboring dukes to join him, and +overran the territory of the republic with fire and sword. The people +of Novgorod, remembering the fate of Kief, were prepared to die in the +defense of the city. The siege commenced. One day the Archbishop took +the eikon—image—of the Virgin, which was carried around in solemn +procession. It was struck by an arrow shot by a Souzdalian soldier, +when miraculous tears appeared upon its face. The besiegers were +struck by a panic, and the people of Novgorod sallied out, killed a +number of the enemy, and took so many prisoners that "you could get +six Souzdalians for a grivna." Whatever may have been the value of +that coin, the market was evidently overstocked with Souzdalians.</p> + +<p>Foiled in this attempt, Andrew tried other means. He prohibited the +sale of grain to the people of Novgorod, who were thereby compelled to +make peace. They did not surrender any of their privileges but +accepted as their duke the prince selected by Andrew.</p> + +<p>His next war was with Mstislaf the Brave, Duke of Smolensk, who, aided +by his brothers, had taken Kief. Andrew sent a herald to him demanding +the evacuation of Kief, and imposing a fine upon each brother. +Mstislaf who, the Russians say, "feared none but God," gave orders to +have the herald's head and beard shaved,—a gross <span class="pagenum"><a id="page056" name="page056"></a>(p. 056)</span> insult at +that time,—and then dismissed him, saying: "Go and repeat these words +unto your master,—'Up to this time we have respected you like a +father, but since you do not blush to treat us as your vassals and +common people, since you have forgotten that you speak to princes, we +laugh at your threats. Execute them!—we appeal to the judgment of +God.'" The challenge was accepted, and Andrew was defeated.</p> + +<p>The Duke of Souzdal did not relax in his attempts to established +absolute government. It was with this purpose in view that he expelled +his three brothers, and made friends of the priests. Kief was still +the residence of the <i>Metropolitan</i> or head of the Greek Church in +Russia, and Andrew was anxious that he should transfer his residence +to Vladimir so as to make that city the religious center of Russia. +His wish was not gratified. He failed in everything, except in making +enemies by his disregard of law. He was murdered in 1174 in his +favorite palace at Bogolioubovo, by his own <i>boyards</i> or nobles.</p> + + + + +<h2>VI—TROUBLOUS TIMES. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page057" name="page057"></a>(p. 057)</span></h2> + + +<p>The death of Andrew was a welcome relief for the people of Novgorod. +They celebrated it by attacking the houses of the rich, and committed +so many excesses that the priests made a procession with the eikons. +In Souzdal there was trouble about the succession. Two of Andrew's +brothers returned from exile, and claimed the dukedom, and the city of +Vladimir gave them its support. That was enough for Souzdal and Rostof +to recognize another claimant, one of Andrew's nephews. Vladimir was +victorious in the contest, and Andrew's brother, Michael, became Grand +Duke of Souzdal. He died two years afterwards, and the people of +Souzdal once more refused to recognize Vladimir's candidate, Andrew's +other brother Vsevolod, surnamed the Big Nest on account of his +numerous family. Vladimir defeated Souzdal and Vsevolod was its grand +duke from 1176 to 1212. The people of Novgorod thought best to pacify +him. They sent a deputation to Vladimir, to tell Vsevolod, "Lord and +Grand Duke, our country is your patrimony; we entreat you to send us +the grandson of George Dolgorouki, the great-grandson of Monomachus, +to govern us." The request was granted, and Vsevolod's eldest son +Constantine came to Novgorod. The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page058" name="page058"></a>(p. 058)</span> grand duke, however, was +soon displeased with him and displaced him by a younger son, Iaroslaf. +Soon there were quarrels between him and the people, whereupon +Iaroslaf moved to Torjok, a town within Novgorod territory, and from +there stopped all supplies. Famine appeared in the city, and at last +envoys were sent to the duke, who had them arrested. Nothing except +absolute submission would satisfy him. In this dire need help came +from an unexpected quarter. Mstislaf the Bold, son of Mstislaf the +Brave, Duke of Smolensk, heard of Novgorod's plight and sent word to +the city, "Torjok shall not hold itself higher than Novgorod. I will +deliver your lands and citizens, or leave my bones among you." He was +as good as his word. There was a great war between Souzdal and +Smolensk; no quarter was asked or given. In 1216, Vsevolod's sons were +attacked at Lipetsk by the troops of Novgorod and Smolensk, with such +fury that they were routed, and 9,000 were killed whereas only 60 were +taken prisoners. Iaroslaf renounced Novgorod and released the citizens +arrested by him.</p> + +<p>Constantine succeeded his father Vsevolod, but died in 1217, and +another brother, George, became Grand Duke of Souzdal. This prince +made an expedition down the Volga, levying tribute as he proceeded. In +1220, he laid the foundation of Nishni Novgorod, and of several +villages in what was then Moravian territory.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile Mstislaf the Bold resigned as Grand Duke of Novgorod in an +assembly of the people, saying, "I salute St. Sophia, the tomb of my +father,<a id="footnotetag3" name="footnotetag3"></a><a href="#footnote3">[3]</a> and you. People of Novgorod, I am going to reconquer +Galitch from <span class="pagenum"><a id="page059" name="page059"></a>(p. 059)</span> the strangers, but I shall never forget you. I +hope I may lie by the tomb of my father in St. Sophia." The people +implored him to remain; but he had made up his mind, and in 1218 he +left for the southwest, where he did succeed in conquering Galitch, +that is the name given to southwestern Russia at that time.</p> + +<p>After his departure the people of Novgorod called his nephew +Sviatoslaf as their grand duke, but soon there was a quarrel. The +possadnik Tferdislaf caused the arrest of one of the wealthy citizens, +whose friends rose to set him free. Then the burgomaster's friends +came and there was a fight in which ten men were killed. The grand +duke then demanded the dismissal of the burgomaster, and the vetché +assembled to hear both sides. The grand duke was asked what crime the +possadnik had committed.</p> + +<p>"None," he replied, "but it is my will that he be dismissed."</p> + +<p>The burgomaster then said: "I am satisfied, because I am not accused +of any fault; as for you, my brothers, you can dismiss alike +possadniks and dukes."</p> + +<p>The vetché consulted, and announced its decision:</p> + +<p>"Prince, since you do not accuse the possadnik of any fault, remember +that you have sworn to depose no magistrate without trial. Tferdislaf +will remain our possadnik,—we will not deliver him to you."</p> + +<p>Sviatoslaf was very much displeased and resigned, and one of his +brothers, Vsevolod, was appointed in his place. This was in 1219; two +years later, in 1221, Vsevolod was expelled, and the people called +back that same Iaroslaf from whom they had been rescued by Mstislaf +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page060" name="page060"></a>(p. 060)</span> the Bold. Soon there was another dispute and <i>he</i> was sent +about his business. Vsevolod of Smolensk was again made duke, but the +people soon grew tired of him. At this time the Grand Duke of Souzdal +interfered; he made Novgorod pay him tribute, and appointed a prince +of Tchernigof as its duke; but he did not like the place and resigned. +Then the city suffered from a famine, when 42,000 citizens perished +and a fire destroyed a whole quarter of the city. Iaroslaf was made +duke for the fourth time; the spirit of the people was broken, and he +was permitted to rule over them as he pleased. He succeeded as grand +duke in 1236, when he left his son Alexander Nevski as duke in +Novgorod.</p> + +<p>The east coast of the Baltic was considered tributary to Novgorod. +Several colonies had been established on the Düna and south of that +river, but in the 12th and 13th centuries missionaries and merchants +from Germany appeared and gradually penetrated as far as the Düna +where Bishop Meinhard, in 1187, built a Roman Catholic Church and a +fortress. The Livonians were converted much as St. Vladimir had made +Christians of the people of Kief; but in this case, the people of +Livonia revolted; in 1198 the second bishop was killed in battle, and +the natives returned to the heathen gods. Pope Innocent III ordered a +crusade against them. Another bishop sailed up the Düna with a fleet +of twenty-three ships, and in 1200 founded Riga. The year after a +religious society, the Sword-bearers, resembling the Templars, was +installed in Livonia, and the natives appealed to the Duke of Polotsk +for help. They marched upon Riga and were defeated in 1206.</p> + +<p>German <span class="pagenum"><a id="page061" name="page061"></a>(p. 061)</span> colonization proceeded actively under the +Sword-bearers. Several cities were founded, and the country was +divided into fiefs, according to the feudal system of Western Europe. +The towns were modeled after Hamburg, Bremen, and Lübeck. Riga grew +into a large and powerful city.</p> + +<p>In 1225, another religious-brotherhood, the Teutonic Order, entered +into Lithuania, and twelve years later the two orders united. The +introduction of the Roman Catholic religion carried with it the +elements of Roman civilization, and did much toward estranging the +natives of the Baltic provinces from the Russians of the east.</p> + +<p>Southwestern Russia, or Galitch, had, more than any other section, +preserved the old Slav character. "The duke was a prince of the old +Slavonic type. He was elected by a popular assembly, and kept his seat +by its consent."<a id="footnotetag4" name="footnotetag4"></a><a href="#footnote4">[4]</a> The assembly was composed of boyards or nobles, +and sometimes disputes occurred between them and the duke, which ended +in more or less serious disorders. In 1188, the position was offered +to Roman, Duke of Volhynia. He accepted, but before he could enter the +capital, a duke who had been expelled was reinstalled. After his +death, Roman entered the territory of Galitch, not as an elected duke, +but as a conqueror at the head of an army, and treated the dukedom as +a conquest. He was especially cruel to the boyards, treating their +rights and privileges with scorn. Russian authors praise him; one of +them says that he "walked in the ways of God, exterminated the +heathen, flung himself like a lion upon the infidels, <i>was savage as a +wild cat, deadly as a <span class="pagenum"><a id="page062" name="page062"></a>(p. 062)</span> crocodile</i>, swooped down on his prey +like an eagle," which seem strange qualities for praise. Roman died in +battle, in 1205. Mstislaf the Bold conquered Galitch and at his death, +in 1228, his son-in-law Daniel became duke.</p> + +<p>We have seen that, in the 13th century, Russia was divided into a +number of small states, most of them under a duke, but all possessing +some degree of liberty, except in the north where the duke was being +changed into an hereditary monarch. We have also seen that Russia was +part of Europe, and that commercial relations were maintained. At the +same time, just as there had been an invisible but none the less real +dividing line between the Eastern Roman, or Byzantine, Empire and the +west of Europe, so with the adoption of the Greek Church, Russia +inherited the oriental type and principles which separated that form +of Christianity from that of Rome. Thus the slight split grew +gradually into a schism, as Western Europe progressed with every +evolution of the Roman Church, whereas Russia remained stationary.</p> + +<p>Byzantium or Constantinople, situated at the easternmost edge of +Europe, owing to its intimate association with the Persians who, at +the time represented the Oriental character, was more of an oriental +than a western city; its sympathies were also with its neighbors of +the east. There was thus an oriental tendency in Russia as well as in +the Byzantine Empire, and this vague sentiment enabled Russia to bend +before a blast, which would have withered any nation of a more +pronounced occidental character.</p> + + + + +<h2>VII—THE YELLOW PERIL. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page063" name="page063"></a>(p. 063)</span></h2> + + +<p>On the borders of the Chinese Empire, in the northeast of Asia, roamed +a Mongol tribe, known as the Tartars or Tatars. A Chinese author of +that time, described them as follows: "The Ta-tzis<a id="footnotetag5" name="footnotetag5"></a><a href="#footnote5">[5]</a> or Das occupy +themselves exclusively with their flocks; they go wandering +ceaselessly from pasture to pasture, from river to river. They are +ignorant of the nature of a town or a wall. They are ignorant of +writing and books; their treaties are concluded orally. From infancy +they are accustomed to ride, to aim their arrows at rats and birds, +and thus acquire the courage essential to their life of wars and +destruction. They have neither religious ceremonies nor judicial +institutions. From the prince to the lowest among the people, all are +fed by the flesh of the animals whose skin they use for clothing. The +strongest among them have the largest and fattest morsels at feasts; +the old men are put off with the fragments that are left. They respect +nothing but strength and courage; age and weakness are condemned."</p> + +<p>The people were, therefore, nomads, moving their flocks as necessity +required, and occasionally making a raid upon a neighboring town. +"They move on horseback;" says the Chinese author; "when they wish to +capture <span class="pagenum"><a id="page064" name="page064"></a>(p. 064)</span> a town, they fall on the suburban villages. Each +leader seizes ten men, and every prisoner is forced to carry a certain +quantity of wood, stones, and other material. They use these for +filling up moats or to dig trenches. In the capture of a town the loss +of a myriad men was thought nothing. No place could resist them. After +a siege, the entire population was massacred, without distinction of +old or young, rich or poor, beautiful or ugly, those who resisted or +those who yielded; no distinguished person escaped death, if a defense +was attempted."</p> + +<p>These nomad Tartars were united by and under Genghis Khan (1154-1227), +one of their chiefs or khans. He summoned all the khans of the several +tribes, and before them took the title of emperor over all, declaring +that, as there was only one sun in heaven, so there should be but one +emperor on earth. At the head of his tribes, Genghis conquered +Manchuria and North China; then he moved west. He himself remained in +Asia, but two of his lieutenants proceeded in that direction, subduing +the tribes on their way, and often joined by them. The long march had +rendered the Tartars inured to hardship and wholly indifferent to +danger. At last they passed by the southern shore of the Caspian Sea, +and, crossing the Caucasus, commenced the invasion of Europe.</p> + +<p>The march of such a host could not be kept secret. When the Polovtsi, +the old enemies of Russia, heard of the approach, they sent for help +to the Christian dukes. "When they have taken our country, they will +take yours," they said. Mstislaf the Bold of Galitch, urged that the +assistance be granted, and the chief of the Polovtsi <span class="pagenum"><a id="page065" name="page065"></a>(p. 065)</span> agreed +to enter the Greek Church. The Russians assembled on the lower +Dnieper, where they were approached by some Tatar envoys who told them +that they had "come by God's command against our slaves and grooms, +the accursed Polovtsi. Be at peace with us; we have no quarrel with +you." The envoys were arrested and put to death. The Russian army then +moved eastward, and met the Tartar host at the Kalka, a small river +running into the Sea of Azof. Instead of waiting for the troops still +on the way, Mstislaf the Bold and his friends began the battle. While +it was at its height, the Polovtsi were seized by a panic and, falling +back, threw the Russians into disorder. The Russian army was routed; +six dukes and seventy high boyards were left dead on the battlefield, +and hardly a tenth of the army escaped. The Grand Duke of Kief still +occupied a fortified camp on the Kalka. The Tartars offered to allow +him and his drujina to retire upon payment of a ransom. He accepted, +and was attacked by the Tartars after he had left his fortifications. +He and his two sons were stifled under boards, and his guard was +massacred.</p> + +<p>The Tartars at this time needed all their men to complete the conquest +of China, and therefore the armies invading Europe were recalled, +after southern Russia was at their mercy. The Russians did not inquire +into the cause of this relief, but resumed their old life, confident +that all danger was past.</p> + +<p>When the Tartars had made themselves masters of China, Bati, a nephew +of Genghis, was dispatched westward to mark further conquests. He did +not follow the same route but passed south of the Ural Mountains. +Thirteen <span class="pagenum"><a id="page066" name="page066"></a>(p. 066)</span> years after the battle of the Kalka, Bati besieged +and took the capital of the Bulgars, east of the grand dukedom of +Souzdal (1237). As soon as the dukes of Central Russia heard this, +they united against the Tartars, but the Grand Duke of Souzdal refused +to join them. The Tartars sent envoys to the allied dukes. "If you +want peace," they said, "give us the tenth of your goods." "When we +are dead," was the proud reply, "you can have the whole." A battle was +fought in which the Russians were crushed. Nearly all the dukes died +on the battlefield; Riazan was stormed, sacked, and burned, and the +other towns of that dukedom met the same fate.</p> + +<p>It was now the turn of Souzdal. The army of the grand duke was +defeated on the Oka; Moscow was burned and Vladimir besieged. After an +heroic defense, the Tartars took the city by assault, and many +Russians were burned in the cathedral which was set on fire. Leaving +ruin in their wake, the Tartars went in search of the grand duke who +had taken a position on the Sit, near the frontiers of Novgorod. Here +another battle was fought ending in disaster for the Russians. The +headless corpse of the grand duke was found by the Bishop of Rostof. +On swept the Asiatic hoards, as if nothing would stop them. At Torjok, +"Russian heads fell beneath the sword of the Tartars as grass beneath +the scythe." Leaving Souzdal behind, they entered the territory of +Novgorod; but the dense forests and swollen rivers delayed them, and +when within fifty miles of the city, they turned southeast. The little +town of Kozelsk<a id="footnotetag6" name="footnotetag6"></a><a href="#footnote6">[6]</a> did not surrender but inflicted such a loss upon +the invaders <span class="pagenum"><a id="page067" name="page067"></a>(p. 067)</span> that they mentioned it as "the wicked city." +When it was captured, every man, woman, and child, was butchered.</p> + +<p>The years 1239 and 1240 were spent in ravaging southern Russia. +Peréiaslaf and Tchernigof, after a desperate defense, were burned, and +the Tartars under command of Genghis's grandson Mangou, marched upon +Kief. Mangou offered terms, but Kief, knowing the fate of other +cities, executed Mangou's envoys. The grand duke and his rival, Daniel +of Galitch, fled from the city, but the people fought for their lives. +Mangou was reënforced by Bati's army and the siege began. The walls +were knocked to pieces by battering rams. "The people of Kief, led by +the brave Dmitri, a Gallician boyard, defended the battered ramparts +till the end of the day, and then retreated to the Church of the Dîme, +which they surrounded by a palisade. The last defenders of Kief were +grouped round the tomb of Iaroslaf. The next day they perished. Mangou +gave the boyard his life, but the Mother of Russian Cities was sacked. +This third pillage was the most terrible; even the tombs were not +respected. All that remains of the Church of the Dîme is only a few +fragments of mosaic in the museum at Kief. Saint Sophia and the +Monastery of the Catacombs were delivered up to be plundered." Kief +fell in 1240.</p> + +<p>There remained only Volhynia and Gallicia, which also bowed under the +Tartar yoke. With the exception of Novgorod and the northwest, Russia +was in possession of the Yellow race. The Russian dukes who had +escaped carried the tale to Western Europe which was soon in a state +of alarm. The Emperor of Germany wrote to the other <span class="pagenum"><a id="page068" name="page068"></a>(p. 068)</span> +monarchs: "This is the moment to open the eyes of body and soul, now +that the brave princes on whom we depended are dead or in slavery." +The Pope called upon the Christian princes to take up arms. Meanwhile +Bati continued his westward march and penetrated as far as Moravia, +when he was recalled by the death of the second Tartar emperor. He +withdrew to Russia and on the Volga built a city which he named +Saraï—the Castle,—which became the capital of a Tartar empire +extending from the Ural river and Caspian Sea to the mouth of the +Danube, and is known as the Golden Horde.</p> + +<p>The first three successors of Genghis Khan are known as the Great +Khans, and ruled over all the Tartars; but after Kublaï Khan +established himself in China, in 1260, the Golden Horde declared its +independence. So long as Bati lived, this khanate was united and +powerful, but after his death, in 1257, it gradually lost strength. In +1272, these Tartars became Mahomedans and spread that faith. The +Golden Horde enjoyed another period of prosperity under the Khan +Uzbeck.</p> + +<p>How did the Russians bear this blow? We have seen that Iaroslaf, the +duke who had been expelled so many times from Novgorod, became Grand +Duke of Souzdal. He found the country in Souzdal in ruins. Nothing was +left of the towns and villages but charred remains; the inhabitants +who had survived the Tartar massacres had fled into the forests. +Iaroslaf's first work was to induce them to return and rebuild their +homes. The Tartar general Bati heard of this and sent word to Iaroslaf +to come to him. The grand duke dared not refuse. He went <span class="pagenum"><a id="page069" name="page069"></a>(p. 069)</span> to +Saraï on the Volga where Bati told him that he might continue as grand +duke, but that it would be best for him to pay a visit to the great +khan, who was then on the Amoor in the far eastern part of Asia. +Iaroslaf agreed; he started on his long journey, and after many months +of travel through deserts and wastes, he arrived at the headquarters +of the Tartars. There he was compelled to kneel before Oktaï, the +successor of Genghis. It appears that some Russian boyards had +preceded Iaroslaf hoping to secure favors from the khan, and that they +accused the grand duke, but Oktaï refused to listen to them. After +some delay Iaroslaf was confirmed as grand duke, and permitted to +return, but he died from exhaustion in the desert, in 1246. His +remains were brought to Vladimir.</p> + +<p>Iaroslaf left two sons, Andrew, who succeeded him in Souzdal, and +Alexander who was duke at Novgorod. This younger son was an able as +well as a brave man. On one occasion, when the Scandinavians had +invaded Novgorod's territory aided by the Catholic Orders, Alexander +had gained a great victory on the Neva, from which he is known in +history as Alexander Nevski (1240). Upon his return to Novgorod he had +a dispute with the vetché, and he left the city. After his departure +the territory of the Republic was invaded by the German Sword-bearers +who erected a fort on the Neva, captured Pskof, Novgorod's ally, and +plundered merchants within a short distance of the walls. The people +sent to Alexander Nevski, begging him to come to their rescue, and +after several refusals he consented. Alexander collected an army, +drove the Germans out of Pskof and their new fort, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page070" name="page070"></a>(p. 070)</span> and at +last defeated them on the ice of Lake Peipus in 1242. This is known as +the Battle on the Ice. Alexander then returned to Novgorod where he +was received with honor and joy.</p> + +<p>Andrew, the Grand Duke of Souzdal, Alexander's brother, refused to +recognize Bati's authority, whereupon a Tartar army ravaged his +territory for the second time. Novgorod, as we have seen, had escaped +the Tartar invasion, but when Alexander Nevski received a letter from +Bati, in which the khan said, "God has subjected many peoples to me, +will you alone refuse to recognize my power? If you wish to keep your +land, come to me; you will see the splendor and the glory of my +government." The duke thought it prudent to comply. He and his brother +Andrew went to Saraï, where honors were showered upon the hero of the +Neva. The two brothers were directed to visit the great khan, as their +father Iaroslaf had done. They did so; and the Mongol emperor +confirmed Andrew as Duke of Souzdal, but to Alexander's dukedom, he +added Kief and South Russia. They returned from the Far East in 1257.</p> + + + + + +<h2>VIII—RUSSIA UNDER THE MONGOL YOKE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page071" name="page071"></a>(p. 071)</span></h2> + + +<p>The Tartars did not interfere with the people, their institutions, or +religion, but they demanded tribute in the form of an annual poll-tax. +Officers called baskaks went from house to house to collect it, either +in money or in furs, and those who could not pay were sold as slaves. +Sometimes this collection caused disturbances. It was some time before +the people of Novgorod would submit. When Bati sent his collectors to +the Republic, the question was brought before the vetché where the +possadnik urged the wisdom of paying the tax, but the people would not +hear of it and promptly murdered the unfortunate burgomaster. +Alexander, too, advised to avoid trouble, but the people refused and +several boyards, including Alexander's son Vassili urged resistance. +The duke acted vigorously. He ordered the arrest of his son, and had +the boyards punished; but it was not before the people heard of the +approach of a Tartar army, that they submitted. Still such was their +resentment that Alexander had the baskaks guarded night and day. At +last Alexander threatened to leave Novgorod with his drujina; then the +people offered no further opposition to the collection of the hated +poll-tax (1260). Two years later the people of Souzdal, Vladimir, and +Rostof rose <span class="pagenum"><a id="page072" name="page072"></a>(p. 072)</span> against the baskaks and killed one of them, a +Russian who had become a Mahomedan. Alexander, who had succeeded his +brother Andrew as Grand Duke, decided to attempt to appease the khan +by going himself to Saraï with presents; he also wished to be excused +from furnishing a body of Russians to serve in the Tartar army. He +succeeded, but was kept at the court of the khan for a year. His +health broke down and he died on his return journey in 1263. The news +of his death was brought to Novgorod, as mass was being said in the +cathedral. The Metropolitan who was reading the service, interrupted +it, and said, "Learn, my dear children, that the Sun of Russia has +set,—is dead," and the people cried, "We are lost." The death of +Alexander Nevski was a heavy blow to Russia.</p> + +<p>The Russians, that is the people of Russia whose story we are reading, +did not mingle with any Tartar except the tax collector whom they did +not like. The victors were nomads, who did not care to occupy the land +they had conquered. When they did settle at Saraï on the Lower Volga, +they absorbed the tribes who had lived there before the invasion, and +who were not Russians, but nomads. The Russian <i>people</i> did not +associate with the conquerors. It was at this time that the word +<i>Krestianine</i> or "true Christian" was applied to the peasant, instead +of the contemptuous term moujik.</p> + +<p>Whatever Asiatic characteristics were grafted upon the Russians, came +to them through their kniazes and boyards. The dukes soon showed that +all they cared for, was to hold their positions. After Alexander +Nevski, there is not a single instance of a desire to relieve the +people; <span class="pagenum"><a id="page073" name="page073"></a>(p. 073)</span> and the victors on their part never interfered so +long as the tribute was paid regularly. The descendants of Andrew +Bogolioubski were not disturbed in Souzdal; those of Roman continued +to hold Galitch and Volhynia, and Oleg's house remained in possession +of Tchernigof. The dukes might fight about Kief; Novgorod might +appoint or expel its dukes,—the Tartars did not mind. But the khan +did insist that the dukes should visit him and pay him homage. He also +reserved the right of approving the succession of a duke, who was +compelled to apply for a written consent, called an <i>iarlikh</i>. On one +occasion when the people of Novgorod elected Duke Michael, they +afterwards refused to recognize him, asserting that "it is true we +have chosen Michael, but on condition that he should show us the +iarlikh."</p> + +<p>The dukes, holding their possessions by favor of the khan, tried to +gain his good-will and favor. Gleb, duke of Biélozersk married in the +khan's family about 1272; Feodor of Riazan was the son-in-law of the +khan of the Nogaïs. In 1318, the Grand Duke George married Kontchaka, +sister of the Khan Uzbeck. It was the rulers, and not the people of +Russia, that quietly submitted to the <i>Tartartchina</i> or Mongol yoke.</p> + +<p>The khans, while they did not care about the people took care that the +dukes should show them slavish respect. In 1303, the dukes were +convoked, and when they were assembled a letter from the khan was +read, in which they were commanded to stop fighting because the great +khan desired to see peace established. Whenever such a letter was +brought, the dukes were directed to meet the envoys on foot, prostrate +themselves, spread fine carpets under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page074" name="page074"></a>(p. 074)</span> their feet, present +them with a cup filled with gold pieces, and listen, kneeling, while +the letter was read.</p> + +<p>Children of the prairie and the desert, the Tartars had neither a +religion nor a civilization to impose upon the Russian people. The +khans were tolerant because they did not care. Koïyuk had a Christian +chapel near his residence. In 1261, the Khan of Saraï gave permission +for the erection of a Greek church in his capital, and he allowed a +bishop to reside there. Mangou gave equal privileges to Christians, +Jews, and Mahomedans.</p> + +<p>The dukes and boyards, paying court to the Tartars, gradually adopted +their mode of dressing and, as they became Asiatic in appearance, they +came under the influence of Asiatic thought. They dressed in a long +caftan or flowing robe, wore a sort of turban on the head, swords and +daggers in their belts, and when on horseback, sat in very high +saddles with short stirrups. Dukes and boyards thus became +semi-Asiatic, and drifted away from the people among whom the national +principle was kept alive.</p> + +<p>Every succeeding visit to the khan served to increase the intimacy of +the dukes and their Asiatic masters. It was not many years before the +relation with the great khan was severed, but that with the Golden +Horde was kept alive. A writer<a id="footnotetag7" name="footnotetag7"></a><a href="#footnote7">[7]</a> living at that time, who visited +Saraï during Bati's life, gives the following description: "It (the +court) is crowded and brilliant. His army consists of 600,000 men, +150,000 of whom are Tartars, and 450,000 strangers, Christians as well +as infidels. On Good Friday we were conducted to his tent, between two +fires, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page075" name="page075"></a>(p. 075)</span> because the Tartars believe that a fire purifies +everything, and robs even poison of its danger. <i>We had to make many +prostrations</i>, and enter the tent without touching the threshold. Bati +was on his throne with one of his wives; his brothers, his children, +and the Tartar lords were seated on benches; the rest of the assembly +were on the ground, the men on the right, the women on the left.... +The khan and the lords of the court emptied from time to time cups of +gold and silver, while the musicians made the air ring with their +melodies. Bati has a bright complexion; he is affable with his men, +but inspires general terror." The same writer visited the court of the +great khan, and in his description dwells upon the fact that it was +not the Tartars who were most terrible, but the Russian dukes and +nobles who accused one another and who sought to destroy their own +countrymen by bribing the favorites. It was thus that Duke Michael of +Tchernigof was murdered in 1246, and Duke Michael of Tver in 1319, by +a Russian hireling of the Grand Duke of Moscow who was present when +the foul deed was committed. Servile submission to the khans, a +haughty demeanor towards their own people, became the characteristics +of the dukes. "The dukes of Moscow," says a Russian author,<a id="footnotetag8" name="footnotetag8"></a><a href="#footnote8">[8]</a> "took +the humble title of servants of the khan, and it was by this means +that they became powerful monarchs." An English writer<a id="footnotetag9" name="footnotetag9"></a><a href="#footnote9">[9]</a> comes to the +following evident conclusion: "The first czars of Muscovy were the +political descendants, not of the Russian dukes, but of the Tartar +khans."</p> + +<p>A gradual change came over the Golden Horde after the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page076" name="page076"></a>(p. 076)</span> +Tartars departed from their nomadic life and settled in and about +Saraï. They lost their warlike habits, and with them much of their +vigor. They began to farm out the poll-tax, that is, they sold the +right to collect the tax to merchants of Khiva, whose oppression was +so great that the people of Souzdal revolted in 1262, Koursk in 1284, +Kolomna in 1318, and Tver in 1327. But the oppression was greater when +the dukes of Moscow farmed this tax, not only from their own subjects, +but also from neighboring dukedoms. They were absolutely pitiless in +collecting from the poor people as much as they could extort, and this +was the disgraceful foundation of their wealth and power. The +poll-tax, thereafter, was always a favorite source of revenue in +Russia.</p> + +<p>Besides this tribute, the dukes were compelled to furnish soldiers to +their masters. Soon after the conquest, we read of Russian dukes +marching with the Tartars at the head of their drujinas, and of +supplying them with infantry. In 1276 Boris of Rostof and others, +followed Mangou Khan in the war against the tribes of the Caucasus, +and helped to sack the town of Dediakof in Daghestan. This was +excusable, because the enemy was an alien; but what can be thought of +Prince Andrew, the unworthy son of Alexander Nevski, who, in 1281, +induced the Tartars to aid him in pillaging Vladimir, Souzdal, Mourom, +Moscow, and Peréiaslaf, and led in profaning churches and convents? In +1284, when two descendants of Oleg were dukes of Koursk, one of them +put his brother to death for having insulted the khan, and Russian +historians blame not the murderer, but the victim, because he had +aroused the khan's anger! In 1327, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page077" name="page077"></a>(p. 077)</span> the dukes of Moscow and +Souzdal marched against Tver at the command of their Asiatic master. +Such was the influence of the Tartar yoke.</p> + +<p>The Russian dukes and their nobles lost not only the principle of +patriotism, but also that of personal honor. The unfortunate Russians +henceforth were to them, not fellow-countrymen but "<i>tcherné</i>" "black +people." The khans, with true political instinct looking to the +perpetuation of this condition, gained the friendship of the Church, +as they had that of the dukes. In 1313, the Khan Uzbeck, at the +request of the Metropolitan or head of the Church of Moscow, ordered +that the Church should retain its privileges, and that it should not +be deprived of its property, because, he says, "these possessions are +sacred, as they belong to men whose prayers preserve our lives and +strengthen our armies." The churches and convents grew enormously +rich. They received gifts of land, and the priests, so bribed, allied +themselves with the heathen masters, and aided further in oppressing +the people.</p> + +<p>The descendants of the dukes and drujinas lost the large and generous +impulses of the old Norsemen, to make way for the Asiatic deformities +of treachery, cruelty, cunning, and disregard of honor. Whatever came +in the way of their own interests, was trampled under foot by fair +means or foul. The boyards, too, were tainted by the example of the +chiefs. The vast extent of the country, the sparsity of the +population, the difficulties in the way of communication, and above +all the general ignorance, prevented the appearance of a patriot who +might have raised a truly national banner, and shaken off the yoke of +the servile lackeys of the Tartars.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page078" name="page078"></a>(p. 078)</span> +<a id="img006" name="img006"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img006.jpg" width="500" height="308" alt="Moscow" title="Moscow"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Moscow</p> + + + + +<h2>IX—LITHUANIA AND MOSCOW. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page079" name="page079"></a>(p. 079)</span></h2> + + +<p>We have seen that the Tartar invasion stopped short of Novgorod, and +turned southeast, thus leaving northwest Russia free. What are now +known as the Baltic Provinces, was at that time covered with dense +forests, inhabited by the Finns or Suomi, the Tchouds, Jmouds, and +Lithuanians, all of the same race and speaking the same language, but +constantly at war with one another. In the 13th century a chief named +Mindvog, after killing his brothers and sons, united the tribes, and +made himself master of Lithuania. He then invaded Russia whose dukes, +suffering under the Tartar yoke, were unable to withstand him. He +captured Grodno and Novogredek, when he was confronted by Alexander +Nevsky and Daniel of Volhynia in front, and by the Knights of Livonia +in his rear. In this extremity Mindvog sent to the Pope promising that +he would be converted in return for his good services. Pope Innocent +IV replied by sending a papal legate to Grodno, where Mindvog and his +wife were baptized, and he was made King of Lithuania (1252). Soon +after he had a dispute with the Livonian Knights to whom he was forced +to cede the country of the Jmouds. He again became a pagan and, +marching against the Knights, defeated them. Upon <span class="pagenum"><a id="page080" name="page080"></a>(p. 080)</span> his return +from this expedition, he was murdered by a chief named Dovmont whom he +had injured. Lithuania again fell into anarchy until another +enterprising chief named Gedimin restored order in 1315.</p> + +<p>Gedimin invaded Russia, defeated a Russo-Tartar army in 1321, and took +Tchernigof and Vladimir. He then went south, where the Russian cities +readily opened their gates to him, hoping for relief from the Mongol +yoke. He took the old capital Kief, and there had his sons baptized in +the Greek church and tried to marry them into the families of Russian +dukes. He established his capital at Wilna where he attracted many +German artists and mechanics by granting them special privileges. He +died a pagan, in 1340, dividing his country among his sons and his +brother.</p> + +<p>One of his sons, Olgerd, succeeded in getting possession of the whole, +and then started upon a career of conquest. He first attacked +Novgorod, where one of his brothers had taken refuge, and made +conquests east and south, until he reached the Black Sea. Although he +was a pagan, Simeon the Proud, Grand Duke of Moscow, gave him his +daughter; but this did not prevent Olgerd from waging war with +Simeon's successors. In 1368, he defeated the Tartars of the Lower +Dnieper, and destroyed Cherson in the Crimea.</p> + +<p>When he died he followed Gedimin's example by dividing his territories +among his sons, but one of them, Jagellon, became sole ruler by +putting his brothers to flight and his uncle to death. At this time +the Russian language was adopted and with it the Greek Church, +although Jagellon was still a pagan. When he married Hedwiga, +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page081" name="page081"></a>(p. 081)</span> the heiress to the Kingdom of Poland, he embraced the Roman +Catholic church; in 1386, he went to Cracow, where he was crowned King +of Poland, and soon after gave orders that his people must join the +same church, converting them as Vladimir had introduced Christianity +among the people of Kief. Jagellon made Cracow his capital. Some time +afterwards one of his cousins, Vitovt, raised a revolt against him in +Lithuania, and Jagellon was compelled to cede that territory to him. +Thus Vitovt became Grand Duke of Lithuania.</p> + +<p>Vitovt married the sister of Vassili, Grand Duke of Moscow, and +extended his domain toward the east. He invaded Smolensk, whose Grand +Duke Sviatoslaf, when fighting in Russia, had taken a delight in +impaling and burning alive Russian women and children. That savage had +been killed in 1387, in a battle with the Lithuanians, and his son had +succeeded him. Vitovt, before Smolensk, invited this prince and his +brothers to visit him in his tent. They accepted and were warmly +received, but when they were ready to depart, they were told that they +were prisoners of war. Smolensk was taken by surprise, and pillaged.</p> + +<p>Vitovt contemplated the conquest of Russia. His territory bordered in +the east on Souzdal and Riazan. He had defeated an army of Tartars in +the south, and was making preparations for a bold stroke. Collecting +an army of Lithuanians, Poles, Russians, and five hundred Knights of +the Teutonic Order, he set out from Kief and came upon the Tartar army +near Pultowa where, in 1399, he suffered a serious defeat. He +recovered from this blow, and after some time began a war with the +Teutonic Order <span class="pagenum"><a id="page082" name="page082"></a>(p. 082)</span> which he defeated in 1410, at the battle of +the Tannenberg. He thereupon re-annexed the Jmoud country.</p> + +<p>Vitovt had given up his designs upon Russia; he planned to raise +Lithuania into a kingdom, and to have a Metropolitan of its own, +instead of being dependent upon the head of the Greek Church at +Moscow. He succeeded in the last-named object, but met with a check in +the former, and, as he was eighty years old, the disappointment caused +an illness from which he died, in 1430. After his death, Lithuania had +no more influence upon Russia. Sometimes it had a grand duke of its +own, at other times it was united with Poland. In 1501, it became the +property of the King of Poland, who added to his title that of Grand +Duke of Lithuania. Its nobles spoke the Polish language.</p> + +<p>It was necessary to sketch in a few words the history of Lithuania, +not only because it is part of Russia to-day, but because it has +always been claimed by Russia. The history of that country, however, +from the beginning of the 14th century, is centered about Muscovia, +the territory of the Grand Duke of Moscow. At the time of the +Lithuanian conquest, Muscovia was bounded on the north by Tver, on the +east by Souzdal, on the south by Riazan, and on the west by Lithuania. +It belonged to Alexander Nevski, who at his death left it to his son +Daniel. Its area was increased by him by the towns of Peréiaslaf, +Zabiesski and Kolomna. Daniel died in 1303, and was buried in the +church of St. Michael the Archangel, which remained the burial place +of the Muscovite princes until the time of Peter the Great.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page083" name="page083"></a>(p. 083)</span> next grand duke was Daniel's son George, whose first act +was to capture the Duke of Smolensk from whom he took the town of +Mojaïsk. In 1304 the Grand Duke of Souzdal died. Michael of Tver +claimed the succession as the eldest of the family, but George of +Moscow contested it. Michael was supported by the boyards of Vladimir +and the people of Novgorod; the khan at Saraï also declared in his +favor, and Michael was installed. George, however, was not satisfied +and began a war; he was defeated in battle, and twice besieged in +Moscow. Suddenly he heard that the khan was dead; he hastened to +Saraï, and there made friends with the new Khan Uzbeck, who gave him +his sister Kontchaka in marriage, and ordered that George should have +possession of Souzdal. He returned to Moscow with a Tartar army and +Michael, considering the odds, proposed to cede Vladimir on condition +that his own patrimony of Tver should remain intact. George refused, +and the war broke out anew. Michael defeated him and captured +Kontchaka and the Tartar general, but he released his prisoners, and +the dispute was again brought before the khan. George took good care +to be at Saraï, and having ample means at his disposal from his +poll-tax collecting, distributed bribes right and left. Michael, +confident in the justice of his cause, committed the mistake of +sending his twelve-year-old son in charge of high boyards, to +represent him; but when he was informed of George's methods, he, too, +proceeded to Saraï, after making his will. Upon his arrival, he was +accused of having drawn his sword upon the Khan's envoy, and of having +poisoned Kontchaka. Uzbeck would not even listen to such absurd +complaints, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page084" name="page084"></a>(p. 084)</span> but George invented other falsehoods, and at +last Michael was arrested. The khan went on a hunting trip in the +Caucasus, and the wretched Duke of Tver was dragged after him in +chains. One day he was put in the pillory in the market of a populous +town, where the people crowded around him to look at the man who, a +short time before, was a powerful prince in his own country. Michael's +boyards urged him to escape, but he dreaded the khan's vengeance upon +his family and people. George increased his bribes, and thus secured +the order that Michael should be put to death.</p> + +<p>One of Michael's pages came to the tent occupied by him, and told him +that George and a Tartar general were approaching. "I know what their +object is," said the unfortunate duke. He at once sent his young son +to one of the khan's wives, who had promised to protect the child. The +two men came to the tent and ordered the Tver boyards to leave. Hired +assassins were called in, and a Russian ruffian named Romanetz stabbed +the unfortunate duke. When George and the Tartar entered, they saw the +nude corpse; it had been despoiled. The Tartar was shocked. "What!" he +cried, "Will you allow the body of your uncle to be outraged!" George +only smiled; but one of his attendants threw a cloak over the murdered +man.</p> + +<p>When Michael's children grew up, one of his sons, Dmitri of the +Terrible Eyes, secured some friends at the khan's court. He obtained +the title of grand duke, and a baskak received orders to install him. +When George heard this, he hurried to Saraï; there the two men met, +and Dmitri, drawing his sword, killed his father's <span class="pagenum"><a id="page085" name="page085"></a>(p. 085)</span> murderer +(1325). Dmitri was arrested and put to death by order of the khan, but +his brother Alexander was permitted to succeed him at Tver.</p> + +<p>This duke was in sympathy with the people. Suffering under the +oppression of the Tartar tax collectors, the people revolted under the +leadership of Alexander. The palace of the baskak was attacked, and he +and his attendants were killed. Uzbeck, incited by Ivan Kalita, +George's brother and successor at Moscow, prepared to take revenge, +when Ivan volunteered to punish Tver, as well as Riazan and Novgorod +which had given evidence of sympathy. The offer was accepted, and Ivan +at the head of a Muscovite army reënforced by 50,000 Tartars marched +upon the doomed city. Alexander and his brothers fled. Tver and two +other cities were sacked, the Duke of Riazan was put to death, and +Novgorod had to pay a heavy fine. Ivan thought that his services would +procure him Tver and Riazan, but Uzbeck did not intend to extend the +power of the treacherous family, and Constantine, another son of +Michael, was made Duke of Tver. He and Ivan went to Saraï, where the +latter was ordered to bring Alexander before the khan. The prince had +found an asylum in Pskof, where Ivan's messengers appeared to demand +his surrender. The envoys urged him to give himself up under the plea +"not to expose a Christian people to the wrath of the infidels." The +people of Pskof thought otherwise. "Do not go to the Horde, my lord," +said they; "whatever happens, we will die with you." Alexander refused +to obey the summons, and the people of Pskof began to construct a new +fort. Ivan Kalita, the Grand Duke of Moscow, persuaded the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page086" name="page086"></a>(p. 086)</span> +Metropolitan to place Alexander and Pskof under the ban of the Church, +which was done. We see here a Christian prince persecuting a relative, +and a Christian priest excommunicating a Christian people,—all to +please an infidel conqueror! Still the people of Pskof refused to +yield, but Alexander left the city and took refuge in Lithuania. Then +Pskof informed Ivan of his departure, saying, "Alexander is gone; all +Pskof swears it, from the smallest to the greatest, popes,<a id="footnotetag10" name="footnotetag10"></a><a href="#footnote10">[10]</a> monks, +nuns, orphans, women, and children." (1329.)</p> + +<p>Some years afterwards an attempt was made by Alexander to recover +Tver. He went to Saraï with some of his boyards. There he made +submission. "Lord, all-powerful Czar," he said, "if I have done +anything against you, I have come hither to receive of you life or +death. Do as God inspires you; I am ready for either." Uzbeck pardoned +him and Alexander returned to Tver. This did not please Ivan Kalita, +who knew that he was hated everywhere, and that his enemies only +needed a leader. He went to Saraï where he told Uzbeck that Alexander +was a very dangerous enemy to the Tartars. Alexander was summoned to +appear and when he complied, he was arrested, condemned to death, and +beheaded.</p> + + + + + + +<h3>X—DECLINE OF THE TARTAR POWER. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page087" name="page087"></a>(p. 087)</span></h3> + +<h5>DMITRI DONSKOI.</h5> + + +<p>Crafty and unscrupulous, the grand dukes of Moscow were feared by +their neighbors. Ivan Kalita, as farmer of the poll-tax, grew +immensely wealthy. He collected a double tax from Novgorod, which the +republic, although allied with Lithuania, dared not refuse. He bought +several towns, besides land in the neighborhood of Vladimir, Rostof, +and Kostroma. His title was still Grand Duke of Vladimir, but Moscow +was the real capital. Ivan took very good care to stand well with the +Church. He built convents and churches, and never went out without an +alms-bag or <i>kalita</i> to give money to the poor; hence his surname. The +seat of the Metropolitan was still at Vladimir, but he often came to +Moscow, and finally moved there; so that it became also the capital of +the Church. It is reported that the Metropolitan said to Ivan, "God +will bless you and raise you above all other dukes, and this city +above all other cities. Your house will reign in this place during +many centuries; their hands will conquer all their enemies; the saints +will make their dwelling here, and here my bones shall rest."</p> + +<p>When Ivan with the Alms-bag died in 1341, he left the bulk <span class="pagenum"><a id="page088" name="page088"></a>(p. 088)</span> +of his possessions to his eldest son Simeon, and gave only small +estates to his other children; he also forbade that Moscow's territory +should be divided. His body was scarcely in the grave before the dukes +of Tver and Souzdal were on the way to Saraï to claim the grand +dukedom of Vladimir; they were supported by other dukes who disliked +and dreaded the Muscovite family. Simeon hurried after them, well +provided with some of his father's treasure. He used it so well, that +he received the iarlikh, and was installed at Vladimir. Servile toward +the khan, he was overbearing toward the other Russian dukes, which +procured for him the surname of the Proud. He was the first to assume +the title of Grand Duke of all the Russias; and, acting in that +capacity, he graciously confirmed the charter of Novgorod, for which +he demanded and obtained payment. Simeon died in 1353 of the "black +death," a pestilence which was imported from Asia.</p> + +<p>Great changes were taking place at Saraï, in the Khan of the Golden +Horde. Its power was broken by internal discord, when Mourout, the +legal heir of Bati, was attacked by a rival Mamaï, who succeeded in +establishing himself at Saraï. Simeon was succeeded by his brother, +Ivan II, an easy-going, good-natured man whose reign of six years did +not increase the influence of Moscow. At his death, in 1359, he left +several minor children, the oldest of whom was Dmitri, a boy of +twelve. Dmitri of Souzdal went to Saraï—and secured the iarlikh, +which made him Grand Duke of Vladimir, but Alexis, the Metropolitan, +was loyal to Ivan's children, and appealed to the khan in the name of +his young ward. Mourout, the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page090" name="page090"></a>(p. 090)</span> heir of Bati, declared in his +favor, and young Dmitri was taken to Vladimir escorted by an army, and +installed. (1363.)</p> + +<a id="img007" name="img007"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img007.jpg" width="400" height="425" alt="Dmitri Donskoï" title="Dmitri Donskoï"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Dmitri Donskoï</p> + +<p>The appointment was disputed by the dukes of Tver, Souzdal, and +Riazan. Dmitri of Souzdal held an iarlikh from Mourout's opponent, and +tried to enter in Vladimir, but was expelled. The Metropolitan +excommunicated the opponents of Ivan's son, who held the fort as Grand +Duke. Young Dmitri made war upon the Duke of Tver, and after a seven +years' struggle (1368-1375), compelled him to renounce his claims.</p> + +<p>Dmitri was summoned before the Khan, in 1371. He went but what he saw +at Saraï convinced him that the Tartars were no longer able to uphold +their authority. He did not hesitate to engage in a struggle with +Riazan, although it was supported by a Tartar army. Thereafter, when +orders arrived from the khan, Dmitri ignored them. In 1376, he sent a +large army to Kazan on the Volga, and forced two Mongol chiefs to pay +tribute. Two years later, in 1378, a battle was fought between Dmitri +and one of Mamaï's generals in Riazan, when the Tartars were defeated, +which made the grand duke exclaim: "Their time is come, and God is +with us!" The khan sent an army to ravage Riazan, and made +preparations to reëstablish his authority at Moscow.</p> + +<p>To make sure of success, Mamaï took two years to collect an immense +army and to mature his plans. This could not remain secret to the +Russians, who, aroused by Dmitri, laid aside their private feuds to +make common cause against the infidels. A large number of dukes +assembled at Moscow, and even the Lithuanians promised to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page091" name="page091"></a>(p. 091)</span> +send troops to Kostroma where the Russian army was gathering. The +Metropolitan assured Dmitri of the victory, and sent two monks to go +with the troops. Making the sign of the Cross on their cowls, he said, +"Behold a weapon which faileth never!"</p> + +<p>Russia was united against the Mongol; all the dukes, with the +exception of those of Tver and Riazan, lent their aid. These two +dreaded Moscow's power, and the Duke of Riazan tried to conclude an +alliance with Jagellon of Lithuania and Mamaï.</p> + +<p>Dmitri, at the head of an army estimated at 150,000 men, marched +through Riazan to the Don where the Tartars were drawn up, awaiting +the reinforcements of their ally Jagellon, who was still fifteen +leagues distant. Dmitri resolved to fight the Tartars before a +junction could be effected. He crossed the Don and met the enemy on +the plain of Koulikovo,—the Field of the Woodcocks,—where a furious +battle was fought. It was decided by a sudden attack upon the Tartars +from an ambush, which threw them into a panic. The Tartars were +routed; Mamaï's camp, his chariots and camels, were all captured. +Dmitri was found in a swoon from loss of blood. He was surnamed +Donskoï, in honor of this victory. (1380.)</p> + +<p>It seemed as if the end of the Mongol yoke had come, when another +great leader appeared among them. Tamerlane, after conquering Bokhara, +Hindostan, Iran, and Asia Minor, entered Europe, and ordered Mamaï to +be put to death. He summoned Dmitri Donskoï to appear before him, and +received a curt refusal. Tamerlane sent one of his generals with an +immense army to Moscow, and Dmitri, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page092" name="page092"></a>(p. 092)</span> not finding the former +support, went to Kostroma to collect troops. The Tartars appeared +before Moscow, which they tried to carry by assault but failed. They +pretended to enter into negotiations, when they surprised the gates +and Moscow was delivered up to fire and sword. It is said that 24,000 +inhabitants were slaughtered. Vladimir and other towns suffered the +same fate.</p> + +<p>It is told that Dmitri wept when he saw the charred remains of his +capital after the Tartars had withdrawn. There was nothing for it but +to make peace with the khan, and once more the Tartar tax gatherers +went their rounds. But Dmitri's heart was sore against the Dukes of +Tver and Riazan who had abetted Mamaï, and Novgorod, which had used +the opportunity of Moscow's distress to plunder some of its towns. +After the country had sufficiently recovered, he compelled the Duke of +Riazan to conclude "a perpetual peace," and Novgorod paid an indemnity +besides agreeing to an annual tribute.</p> + +<p>When Dmitri died in 1389, he left Moscow the most powerful of Russian +dukedoms. He was succeeded by his eldest son Vassili, with the consent +of his cousin Vladimir, who was the eldest of the family. Vassili +mentioned Novgorod as "his patrimony," and acted as if the republic +was his private property. He visited Saraï in 1392, and while there +bought an iarlikh, which placed him in possession of Souzdal, Nishni +Novgorod, and Mourom. In 1393, the people of Novgorod revolted, but +Vassili's army convinced them that the republic was fast losing its +former power.</p> + +<p>At this time Tamerlane, dissatisfied with his generals, arrived in +Europe and after pillaging the Golden Horde, moved <span class="pagenum"><a id="page093" name="page093"></a>(p. 093)</span> westward, +spreading ruin and desolation. He drew near to Moscow, where the +famous eikon of the Virgin was taken in solemn procession, when the +Tartar army stopped and turned to the south, where Azof, Astrakhan, +and Saraï, were plundered and destroyed. (1395.) After Tamerlane's +withdrawal, Vassili pretended not to know to whom to pay the +tribute,—and so paid none at all. The Tartars under Ediger marched +upon Moscow to collect it, but the city was bravely defended and +Ediger, fearing an invasion from Asia, agreed to accept a ransom of +3000 rubles, which was paid by the boyards.</p> + +<p>More dangerous were the attacks of Vitovt of Lithuania, Vassili's +father-in-law, who marched three times against Moscow. Both Vitovt and +Vassili were indisposed to risk a decisive battle, fearing that, if +defeated, their enemies would despoil them. In 1408 a treaty was +signed whereby the Ouger was made the frontier between them. This gave +Smolensk to Lithuania, and Kozelsk to Moscow.</p> + +<p>Vassili extended his territory, and with it his name; one of his +daughters married the Byzantine Emperor, John Palaeologus. At his +death, in 1425, he left his territory to his son Vassili, the Blind, +whose title was contested by his uncle George, on the ground of being +the eldest of the family. The dispute was submitted to the khan, in +1431. Both sides humbled themselves, but the argument of Vassili's +boyards prevailed. "My Lord Czar," they said to the khan, "let us +speak,—us, the slaves of the grand duke. Our master, the grand duke, +prays for the throne of the grand dukedom, which is your property, +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page094" name="page094"></a>(p. 094)</span> having no other title but your protection, your investiture, +and your iarlikh. You are master and can dispose of it according to +your good pleasure. My Lord, the Duke George, his uncle, claims the +grand dukedom by the act and will of his father, but not as a favor +from the all-powerful." Vassili the Blind, was the first grand duke to +be crowned at Moscow instead of at Vladimir.</p> + +<p>His reign was disturbed by constant wars with his uncle, and +afterwards with his cousins. In 1446 he was taken prisoner by one of +the latter, who ordered his eyes to be put out. In 1450, peace was +restored when the second son of George died of poison. Notwithstanding +the loss of his sight Vassili displayed considerable energy in +reëstablishing his authority. Novgorod was forced to pay another +indemnity, and to give a written promise that in future all deeds +would be void unless stamped with the seal of the grand duke.</p> + +<p>The most remarkable incident of Vassili's reign was the Council at +Florence, Italy, in 1449, where delegates of the Roman and Greek +Churches tried to effect a union. There were seventeen Metropolitans, +among them Isidore of Moscow, who signed the Act of Union. When +Isodore returned and declared what he had done, a great opposition +appeared. Vassili himself insulted the Metropolitan, who fled to Rome. +In 1453, Mahomet II captured Constantinople when a host of priests, +monks, artists, and learned men fled from the extinct Byzantine +Empire, to find an asylum in Russia.</p> + +<p>While nothing resulted from the Council of Florence, owing to the +opposition of members of the Greek Church, the fall of Constantinople +left a deep impression upon Russia, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page095" name="page095"></a>(p. 095)</span> which chose to consider +itself as the heir to the Byzantine Empire. More than this, the +influence of the men who found a refuge in Russia, served to inoculate +the country of their adoption with the semi-oriental civilization +which had distinguished Constantinople from Western Europe. The time, +too, was propitious. Russia was gradually recovering from the blow of +Tartar rule, which had marred its progress during two centuries. Here +was, therefore, to all intent and purposes, a virgin soil, which +promised to yield a rich harvest to whatever principles were planted +in it. It might even regenerate the decaying elements of the Byzantine +civilization.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page096" name="page096"></a>(p. 096)</span> +<a id="img008" name="img008"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img008.jpg" width="400" height="486" alt="Ivan III" title="Ivan III"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Ivan III</p> + + + + +<h2>XI—IVAN III, THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page097" name="page097"></a>(p. 097)</span></h2> + + +<p>Vassili's eldest son Ivan was born in 1440. It is said that upon the +occasion of his birth, an old monk at Novgorod had a vision which he +reported to the Archbishop. "Truly," he said, "it is to-day that the +grand duke triumphs; God has given him an heir; I behold this child +making himself illustrious by glorious deeds. He will subdue princes +and nations. But woe to Novgorod! Novgorod will fall at his feet, and +never rise again."</p> + +<p>Vassili, wishing to avoid the disputes incident upon the succession, +during his lifetime admitted Ivan as co-regent. Upon his father's +death, in 1462, Ivan was twenty-two years old. He succeeded without +the usual disturbances, and the first six years of his reign were +uneventful. In 1468, he gained forcible possession of his brother +George's estate, and allowed him to die in prison. When he heard of +his death,—he wept. Another brother, Andrew, was in his way, and was +flung into prison, whereupon Ivan called the Metropolitan and bishops +to his palace, wept some more, and confessed that he had been too +severe;—but he forgot to restore Andrew's property. When his third +brother, Boris, died, Ivan seized the estate and kept it; but he wept +some more.</p> + +<p>This <span class="pagenum"><a id="page098" name="page098"></a>(p. 098)</span> soft-hearted but tenacious gentleman found fault with +his neighbor, Michael of Tver, for entering into an alliance with +Lithuania. To settle the difficulty, he invaded the dukedom, and +annexed it to Moscow. Then, having his hands free, he thought of +Novgorod. The Germans of the Hanseatic League had formed a colony in +the old republic, which had grown very wealthy. Ivan looked upon that +wealth as his; if it was not, it ought to be. Acting upon this +satisfactory conclusion, he remembered that the people of Novgorod had +omitted to do him homage when he succeeded his father. They had even +failed to appreciate the gentle letter of remonstrance in which he +reminded them of their oversight. Good-natured as he knew himself to +be, he could not afford to encourage such a rebellious spirit; but, +being a careful man, he concluded that it would be more humane as well +as cheaper to try the gentle means of bribery. His gold, distributed +where it would do most good, procured him a large party. The +opposition was led by a woman named Marfa, the wealthy widow of a +possadnik. She urged that the republic should ask the help of Casimir +IV, King of Poland, but Ivan's friends in the vetché replied that, if +Poland should win, the Roman Catholic Church would enter, whereas +Russia was at least loyal to the Greek Church.</p> + +<p>Marfa's influence prevailed; the republic submitted to Poland, on +condition that its charter should be respected. Gentle Ivan despatched +some Envoys to warn the people of the error of their ways, and when +that did no good, he hired Tartar cavalry, overran the territory of +the republic, and directed his troops to cut off the noses and lips +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page099" name="page099"></a>(p. 099)</span> of the prisoners. It is probable that he wept, although +history omits mentioning the fact. Novgorod was unprepared; a mob was +collected and styled an army, and in the battle of the Chelona, 3,000 +trained troops put to flight 30,000 citizen soldiers. Novgorod was +lost. Ivan kindly permitted the name "republic" to continue, but his +authority was admitted. He also received a share of the wealth as an +indemnity. (1470.)</p> + +<p>Two years later he married the niece and supposed heiress of the last +Byzantine emperor. Her father, Thomas Palaeologus, had fled to Rome +where he died leaving one daughter Sophia. Pope Paul II wished to find +her a husband, and Cardinal Bessarion of the Greek Church advised him +to offer her hand to Ivan. The offer was accepted; Sophia received a +dower from the Pope who still hoped to unite the two churches, and the +bride was received with great honor in Ivan's territory. The grand +duke probably had his eye on Constantinople, but deferred his claim to +some favorable opportunity. With Sophia came many Greek nobles, +artists, and learned men. Ivan, as may be judged from his gentle +nature, was a patron of art, and had no prejudice against foreigners. +Several Italians came to Moscow where their services were appreciated.</p> + +<p>Ivan left Novgorod in peace during five years, when he thought it time +to familiarize the citizens with the fact that their republic was a +thing of the past. He needed a pretext; by a judicious use of money, +his agents raised a mob against the boyards, who, being assaulted, +invoked the strong arm of the law, in the person of Ivan. The grand +duke came to Novgorod in 1475, to hold court. He <span class="pagenum"><a id="page100" name="page100"></a>(p. 100)</span> at once +ordered the arrest of the possadnik, Marfa's son, and a number of +boyards who believed in a republic, had them put in chains and carried +to Moscow. This was in violation of the charter, but Ivan had an +elastic conscience. Next he tempted a scribe to mention him as +<i>Sovereign</i> instead of "lord," in an official document; and when, in a +last effort to save the republic, Marfa's partisans killed a number of +Ivan's friends, it was evidently his duty to restore order.</p> + +<p>Upon his return to Moscow, he announced that Novgorod was the enemy of +the Greek Church, and the ally of the Pope and of Lithuania. This so +alarmed the Metropolitan and the priests that they begged Ivan to make +war upon the wicked city. Many dukes and boyards, moved by loyalty for +the church, and perhaps scenting spoils, flocked to his camp. Marfa's +partisans in vain tried to arouse the citizens by the cry, "Let us die +for liberty and St. Sophia!" It fell on deaf ears; every one for +himself, was the general thought. Novgorod surrendered. Ivan +guaranteed,—for just so long as it should suit him,—the people's +lives and property, their ancient code of laws, and exemption from +Muscovite service; but the vetché and office of possadnik were +abolished, and with them died the republic. (1478.)</p> + +<p>Having settled with Novgorod to his satisfaction, Ivan bethought +himself of establishing peace in his own household. Russian writers +state that his wife, Sophia, annoyed him by often repeating the +interesting inquiry, "How long am I to be the slave of the Tartars?" +The Khan of the Golden Horde had been dissolved since Tamerlane's +raid; several states had been formed from it, of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page101" name="page101"></a>(p. 101)</span> which the +principal were Kazan, Saraï or Astrakhan, and the Crimea. Kazan was +ruled by a czar; its people were the descendants of Mongols and +Bulgars who had made great progress in commerce. The Khan of Saraï and +his men clung to the life of nomads; but the subjects of the Khan of +the Crimea, were Mongols, Armenians, Greeks, Jews, and Italians; and +all three had this in common that they were constantly indulging in +quarrels and strife at home.</p> + +<p>Ivan knew all this, because sometimes a chief would come to Moscow for +an asylum, and others took service in his army. He no longer sent +tribute, although occasionally, when he was occupied elsewhere, he did +send a small present. In 1478 Khan Akhmet sent ambassadors to Moscow +to remind him that the tribute was in arrears. Ivan, who had +apparently a wonderful command over his features, pretended to lose +his temper, jumped on the picture of the khan, and ordered all the +envoys except one to be put to death. The survivor was told to go +home, and tell his master of his reception.</p> + +<p>Ivan had reasonable cause for thinking that Akhmet would be +displeased, and collected an army of 150,000 men on the Oka, where he +took up a strong position. He had been right in his conjecture, for +Akhmet gathered an army and in due time arrived on the opposite bank +of the river. Ivan had time to reflect. He did not much fancy risking +a decisive battle, and returned to Moscow to consult his mother, the +boyards, and the priests. All urged him to fight, and finally he came +back to the camp, convinced that scheming and plotting were more in +his line. All this time the two armies lay within earshot, exchanging +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page102" name="page102"></a>(p. 102)</span> complimentary remarks, with no casualties. The khan offered +to pardon Ivan on condition that he should come and hold his stirrup; +or, if he were too tired, if he should send some high officer to do it +in his name. Ivan shook his head. Meanwhile the priests at Moscow were +growing impatient, and the Archbishop Vassian sent him a warm letter. +It happened that Akhmet was quite as prudent as Ivan; but when the +winter came and the Oka, instead of a barrier, became an easy +crossing, Ivan ordered the retreat. Just then the two armies, led by +such brave commanders, were seized with a panic, and away they fled in +opposite directions. (1480.) The honors were with Ivan, because he did +not have so far to run as Akhmet, who did not stop until he reached +Saraï. It is not stated why Ivan received no surname from this great +battle.</p> + +<p>The following year, 1481, Ivan had sufficiently recovered to show the +courage he possessed. There was a disturbance in Novgorod, where the +people did not appreciate the nobility of his character. He ordered +some of the boyards to be tortured and put to death, and <i>eight +thousand</i> citizens were forcibly packed off to Souzdal.</p> + +<p>In fear of his doughty enemy Akhmet, Ivan made friends with the Khan +of the Crimea, calculating that if the former should attack him again, +he would have to look out for his rear. Akhmet, however, seemed to +have had enough of it, and Ivan, who was on bad terms with Lithuania +and Poland, suggested to his friend that a raid into those territories +might pay. The Khan of the Crimea took the hint; he penetrated as far +as Kief which he captured and pillaged. (1482.) The famous monastery +of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page103" name="page103"></a>(p. 103)</span> the Catacombs was almost destroyed; but Ivan had the +satisfaction of knowing that his two enemies had other things to think +of, instead of annoying him.</p> + +<p>In 1487 war broke out with Kazan. A Russian army marched against it, +but Ivan did not take command. As a result, the city was taken and the +khan, who had assumed the title of czar, was brought a prisoner to +Moscow. Fearing that he would unite the other Tartars against him if +he annexed the territory at once, he appointed a nephew of his friend, +the Khan of the Crimea, but placed Russian soldiers in the fortress, +while he added the title of Prince of Bulgaria to his own. Other +Tartar princes sent envoys to protest against the arrest. Ivan did not +receive them in person, and refused to release the prisoner, but he +ordered the envoys to be treated with great honor and gave them so +many presents, that they returned in great good humor.</p> + +<p>In 1492, the King of Poland died, leaving that kingdom to his eldest +son Albert, and Lithuania to his second son Alexander. Ivan was justly +indignant that he had not been remembered in the will. He sent envoys +to Bajazet II, Sultan of Turkey, to the Kings of Hungary and Moldavia, +and to his old friend the Khan of the Crimea, to secure their +assistance or at least their kind neutrality. Of the services of the +Khan of the Crimea he felt assured.</p> + +<p>He began by discovering a Polish plot against his life at Moscow, and +appealed to the religious prejudices of the Lithuanian nobles +belonging to the Greek Church, omitting to mention his little +arrangement with the infidel sultan. When Alexander sent envoys to +negotiate terms <span class="pagenum"><a id="page104" name="page104"></a>(p. 104)</span> of peace, Ivan's deputies said to them: +"Lithuania has profited by the misfortunes of Russia to take our +territory, but to-day things are changed." They were right. When peace +was concluded in 1494, Ivan's frontier in the west was extended.</p> + +<p>The marriage of Alexander to Ivan's daughter seemed to end the +hostility between the two countries, but nothing was further from the +schemes of the wily grand duke. He stipulated that she should have a +Greek chapel in the palace, and warned her never to appear in a +Catholic church, and always to wear the Russian national dress. Soon +after the wedding Ivan complained that his daughter was forced to wear +Polish costumes, and that the Greek Church was being persecuted. These +were to him ample cause for war, the more so since he had good reason +to count upon his friends, the priests and boyards of the Greek +Church. When the war broke out, cities where the majority of the +people belonged to that church, opened their gates to his army, and +Alexander was badly defeated in the battle of Vedrocha. This war added +another slice to Ivan's territory.</p> + +<p>Alexander in his distress made an alliance with the Livonian Order and +with the Great Horde at Saraï; but Ivan's old friend, the Khan of the +Crimea, made a raid in Gallicia and Volhynia, and the Lithuanians were +defeated at Mstislaf; but they compelled the Russians to raise the +siege of Smolensk. Meanwhile Ivan had serious trouble. In 1495, he +ordered the merchants of several Hanseatic towns to be arrested at +Novgorod, and incidentally had goods to the value of $200,000,—an +immense sum in those days,—carried to Moscow. This caused <span class="pagenum"><a id="page105" name="page105"></a>(p. 105)</span> +the foreign merchants to leave for safer places; but the Livonian +Order invaded his territory, and in the battle of Siritza, they +crushed a Russian army of 50,000 men, but the following year, 1502, +they were defeated at Pskof.</p> + +<p>Toward the end of his life he was in doubt about his successor, +because his eldest son was dead. At first he thought of making his +grandson Dmitri, his heir; but he changed his mind, sent his +daughter-in-law and grandson to prison and proclaimed his second son +Vassili his heir. He died in 1505, after a reign of forty-three years. +It was under his direction that a new code of laws, the Oulogenia, was +prepared.</p> + + + + +<h2>XII—RUSSIA BECOMES AN AUTOCRACY. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page106" name="page106"></a>(p. 106)</span></h2> + + +<p>Vassili, Ivan's son, showed a great resemblance to his father. He did +not evince any greater love for his near relatives, as one of his +first acts was to put his nephew Dmitri in prison, where he died. One +of his brothers who did not like his manners, tried to escape, but was +brought back and severely punished.</p> + +<p>The republic of Pskof, and the dukedoms of Riazan and +Novgorod-Seversky were still enjoying some degree of liberty, which +Vassili did not approve. At Pskof, the grand duke was represented by +<i>a namiestnik</i>, or ducal delegate; the people, citizens and peasants, +nobles and lower classes, quarreled constantly among themselves, but +united to quarrel with the delegate. Vassili determined to put an end +to this. He came to Novgorod to hold court, and summoned the +magistrates of Pskof to appear before him, and when they arrived he +ordered their arrest. A merchant of Pskof heard of it and, hurrying +home, told the people. Immediately the bell was rung to convoke the +vetché, and the masses called for war with Moscow. More prudent +counsels prevailed when messengers arrived from the prisoners, +imploring their friends not to try a useless resistance and to avoid +the shedding of blood. A leading citizen was sent to Vassili to +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page107" name="page107"></a>(p. 107)</span> offer him submission; he was dismissed with the answer that +one of the <i>diaks</i> or secretaries would come to Pskof to let the +people know the terms. When that officer arrived, he was admitted in +the vetché, where he informed his hearers that Vassili imposed two +conditions, namely, that Pskof and the towns subject to it must +receive his delegates, and that the vetché must be abolished and the +great bell, used to convoke it, must be taken down. Twenty-four hours +were asked to deliberate. Before the time expired, the vetché met for +the last time, when the first magistrate addressed the delegate. "It +is written in our chronicles," he said, "that our ancestors took oaths +to the grand duke. The people of Pskof swore never to rebel against +our lord who is at Moscow, nor to ally themselves with Lithuania, with +Poland, nor with the Germans, otherwise the wrath of God would be upon +them, bringing with it famine, fires, floods, and the invasion of the +infidels. If the grand duke, on his part, did not observe his vow, he +dared the same consequences. Now our town and our bell are in the +power of God and the duke. As for us, we have kept our oath." The +great bell was taken to Novgorod, and Vassili visited "his patrimony." +Three hundred wealthy families were transported to other cities and +replaced by as many families from Moscow. When he departed from Pskof, +he left a garrison of 5,000 guards and 500 artillerymen. That was the +end of the last republic in Russia. (1510.)</p> + +<p>In 1521, it was the turn of Riazan whose duke was accused of having +entered into an alliance with the Khan of the Crimea. He was summoned +to Moscow, where he was arrested, but he managed to escape. His +dukedom, however, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page108" name="page108"></a>(p. 108)</span> was annexed to Moscow. Two years later, in +1523, the Duke of Novgorod-Severski was put in prison for underhand +dealing with Poland, and that dukedom was added to Vassili's +territories. This rounded up Vassili's possessions in Central Russia.</p> + +<p>The grand duke continued his father's policy toward Lithuania. When +Alexander died, he tried to become Grand Duke of Wilna, but the King +of Poland was too quick for him. War broke out, but neither gained any +important advantage, and in 1509 a <i>perpetual peace</i> was concluded +wherein Vassili renounced all claims upon Kief and Smolensk. The +"perpetual peace" lasted three years. Vassili then went to the other +extreme, by declaring that "as long as his horse was in marching +condition and his sword cut sharp, there should be neither peace nor +truce with Lithuania." In 1514, the Russian army besieged and took +Smolensk, but in the same year they were badly defeated in the battle +of Orcha.</p> + +<p>The two grand dukes tried to involve as many allies as they could. The +Khan of the Crimea, the useful friend of Vassili's father, had become +the son's enemy; Vassili offset him by an alliance with the Khan of +Astrakhan. When Sigismund tried to secure the help of Sweden, Vassili +sought that of Denmark; and when his enemy set the Dnieper Cossacks at +him, the grand duke induced the Teutonic Order to invade Poland. After +Sigismund was defeated at Smolensk, the Emperor of Germany and the +Pope offered to mediate; the latter advised Vassili to let Lithuania +alone, and to turn his attention toward Constantinople. Negotiations +commenced in 1520, but it was six years later before a truce was +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page109" name="page109"></a>(p. 109)</span> concluded. On this occasion Vassili made a speech in which he +praised Emperor Charles V, and Pope Clement VII,—but Lithuania lost +Smolensk. It was during this war that the partition of Poland was +first mentioned.</p> + +<p>Vassili did not neglect the east, even while engaged in the west. +Kazan had expelled the nephew of the Khan of the Crimea whom Ivan III +had appointed, and elected a Khan hostile to Russia. Two expeditions +were sent against the city but nothing was effected. When this khan +died, Vassili succeeded in installing a friendly prince, but he was +overthrown and a relative of the Khan of the Crimea took his place. He +prepared a great invasion of Russia in 1521, and did gain a decided +victory on the Oka, after which he ravaged the territory of the grand +duke. Vassili was compelled to humble himself before the khan, in +order to save Moscow; he made him presents and in the treaty signed by +him, called himself the khan's tributary. When the khan withdrew, he +was attacked in Riazan and the treaty was taken away from him. The +invasion was, however, a calamity for the grand dukedom, which was +devastated by fire, and a host of women and children were carried off, +to be sold as slaves at Astrakhan and Kaffa.</p> + +<p>The following year Vassili collected a large army on the Oka and +challenged the Khan of the Crimea to come and give battle. The offer +was declined with the remark that he knew the way into Russia, and +that he was not in the habit of consulting his enemies as to when and +where he was to fight.</p> + +<p>Hoping to profit by the quarrels among the Tartars, Vassili sent an +expedition to Kazan in 1523, and again in 1524, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page110" name="page110"></a>(p. 110)</span> but both +were unsuccessful. Kazan owed its wealth to a fair, which attracted a +host of merchants. Vassili thought that he would destroy his enemy's +prosperity by establishing a rival fair. Accordingly one was opened at +Makarief, and this time the grand duke's expectations were realized. +This was the origin of the world-famous fair at Nishni Novgorod, +whither it was transferred afterwards.</p> + +<p>Vassili made a long stride forward in the direction of autocracy. He +consulted neither boyard nor priest. He deposed the Metropolitan and +banished him to a monastery. Prince Kholmski, who was married to one +of Vassili's sisters, was thrown into prison for failing to show +abject respect. When one of the boyards complained that "The grand +duke decided all the questions, shut up with two others in the +bedchamber," the noble was promptly arrested, condemned to death, and +executed. He interrupted the objection of a high noble with, "Be +silent, lout!" His court displayed great splendor, but it was +semi-Asiatic. The throne was guarded by young nobles called <i>ryndis</i>, +dressed in long caftans of white satin, high caps of white fur, and +carrying silver hatchets.</p> + +<p>Like his father, he tried to attract artists and learned men, and +exchanged embassies with most of the European Courts. He extended the +frontiers of his empire, but ruthlessly suppressed free thought. It +has been claimed that the Slav is fit only for an absolute government. +The history of Russia contradicts the statement. The idea of autocracy +was Asiatic and was imported with the Tartar yoke.</p> + + + + +<h2>XIII—IVAN IV, THE TERRIBLE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page111" name="page111"></a>(p. 111)</span></h2> + + +<p>When Vassili died in 1533, he left two infant sons, Ivan and George, +the elder three years old. His widow, Helena Glinski, assumed the +regency. She was a woman remarkable for spirit and beauty, and showed +her courage in ruthlessly suppressing every attempt of high nobles to +contest her authority. She sent her husband's brother George to +prison, and let him die there. One of her own uncles, who had been in +her confidence, showed too much ambition and suffered the same fate. +Andrew, another brother of Vassili, tried to make his escape; he was +promptly brought back and placed in confinement. This caused an +unimportant war with Poland, ending in a truce in 1537. The Tartars of +Kazan and the Crimea were frequently defeated. But Helena was +cordially hated by the great nobles at Moscow; she was poisoned, and +died in 1538.</p> + +<p>Ivan, the oldest son and heir, was then eight years old. It must be +placed to the credit of his mother that he had learned to read, for +the children were sadly neglected after her death, and it was the +boy's principal solace and occupation. In later years Ivan wrote of +this time, "We and our brother Iouri (George) were treated like +strangers, like the children of beggars. We were ill-clothed, cold +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page112" name="page112"></a>(p. 112)</span> and hungry." What impressed the child especially, was that +when foreign envoys arrived he was placed upon the throne and the same +nobles who showed him such contemptuous indifference, were respectful +and even servile on such occasions. He noticed, too, that when these +proud nobles needed anything, it was necessary that the papers should +be signed by him. All this set the child thinking, and being a manly, +bright boy, he came to the conclusion that, after all, he was the real +master.</p> + +<p>After many quarrels among themselves, Andrew Chouïski, the head of a +noble family, had become all-powerful; all important offices were +occupied by his favorites and friends. Ivan noticed it all, but said +nothing. He was thirteen years old when, after the Christmas +celebration of 1543, he suddenly summoned the boyards before him, and +in a threatening tone sternly accused them of their misdeeds. "There +are among you many guilty ones," he said, "but this time I am +satisfied with making one example." He ordered the guards to seize +Andrew Chouïski, and had him then and there torn to pieces by dogs. +After this terrible punishment, he ordered the arrest of the most +disobedient nobles, who were transported to distant places.</p> + +<a id="img009" name="img009"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img009.jpg" width="500" height="658" alt="Ivan IV" title="Ivan IV"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Ivan IV</p> + +<p>The thirteen-year-old boy then assumed the government, relying chiefly +upon his mother's relations, the Glinskis. In 1547, at the age of +seventeen, he directed the Metropolitan to crown him, not as Grand +Duke but as Czar. In a Bible printed in the Slavonic language, he had +read of the <i>Czar</i> Nebuchadnezzar, the <i>Czar</i> Pharaoh, David, <i>Czar</i> +of Israel, etc. He knew, besides, that the former masters <span class="pagenum"><a id="page114" name="page114"></a>(p. 114)</span> +of the grand dukes, the khans, had been addressed by that title. +Perhaps it was because he wished it to be known that he considered +himself the equal of any Tartar ruler; perhaps because he desired to +have a title superior to that of the nobles who descended from former +grand dukes, and who inherited the rank without the power; at any rate +Ivan IV was crowned as the first Czar.</p> + +<p>Young as he was, and since his thirteenth year beyond control, Ivan's +life had been the reverse of good. But when, soon after the +coronation, he married Anastasia Romanof, he made an earnest effort to +reform. The relatives of his mother and of his wife, the Glinskis and +the Romanofs, enjoyed his favor at this time.</p> + +<p>There was much suppressed dissatisfaction among the nobles, and many +plots were hatched against him. In the year of his coronation, a fire +swept wooden Moscow, and about 1,700 people perished in the flames. +Ivan ordered an investigation, and withdrew to Vorobief. Crowds +gathered in the thoroughfares, when mysterious persons appeared among +them declaring that the Glinskis had set the city on fire. Soon after +shouts were heard, "It is the Princess Anne Glinski who, with her two +sons, has bewitched the city; she has taken human hearts, plunged them +in water, and with this water has sprinkled the houses. This is the +cause of the destruction of Moscow!" A mob collected and made for the +palace of the Glinskis and one of them, George, was stabbed. They went +on to Vorobief, where they demanded the life of Ivan's uncle. The +czar's own life was in danger and the mob had to be dispersed by +force.</p> + +<p>Ivan <span class="pagenum"><a id="page115" name="page115"></a>(p. 115)</span> did not forget this, and terrible was his vengeance upon +the boyards. At this time he gave his confidence to two men, one a +priest named Silvester, who had the reputation of being a very honest +man; the other, a member of the smaller nobility, named Adachef who, +in 1551, as Minister of the Interior, gave to Russian cities the first +municipal liberties. Ivan showed an unusual interest in the people; it +was under his orders that a new code of laws (Soudebnik) was prepared, +and many reforms were made in the Church.</p> + +<p>This rather increased than diminished the hostility of the nobles. +Ivan's favorites, Silvester and Adachef had grown ambitious and the +former especially was overbearing. He openly opposed the czar, and +tried to sow discord between him and his wife. When Ivan's favorite +son died, Silvester told him that it was a punishment from heaven for +his disobedience. The two men tried to procure the dismissal of the +Glinskis and Romanofs, and for that purpose made friends with the +boyards whom Ivan suspected. In 1553, the czar fell dangerously ill; +he called in the boyards and ordered them to swear loyalty to his +infant son Dmitri. They refused. He was informed that the nobles were +conspiring with his cousin Vladimir, whose mother was distributing +money in the army. He was in terror for the lives of his wife and son. +Once he said to the boyards who had remained faithful, "Do not, I pray +you, forget that you have sworn an oath to my son and to me; do not +let him fall into the hands of the boyards; fly with him to some +foreign country, whithersoever God may guide you." Ivan recovered but +he never could forget the anguish of those days.</p> + +<p>Ivan's <span class="pagenum"><a id="page116" name="page116"></a>(p. 116)</span> character at this time was far from bad. He was only +twenty years old, and on several occasions showed that he was +compassionate instead of cruel. It was only natural that his nature +should be perverted, surrounded as he was by men of whom he was +suspicious. Still, such a change could only be gradual. The immediate +consequence of the conduct of his nobles, was that it drew him closer +to the people. This was shown in 1506, when he convoked the three +orders, nobles, priests, and people, to discuss public affairs.</p> + +<p>His first act, after his recovery, was to banish his former favorites. +Silvester was ordered to the monastery of St. Cyril, and Adachef was +sent to Livonia. Soon afterwards the Czarina Anastasia died; there was +a strong suspicion that she had been poisoned. To add to his +bitterness, Prince Andrew Kourbski, a descendant of Rurik and a great +friend of Silvester and Adachef, permitted 15,000 Russians to be +defeated by the Poles with whom Ivan was at war. Kourbski deserted to +the King of Poland.</p> + +<p>It appears that Ivan at this time feared for his life, for he withdrew +to a neighboring castle with his friends, servants, and treasures. +From there he wrote his abdication in two letters, one addressed to +the Metropolitan, the other to the people of Moscow. This action +struck terror among the nobles and the people. The former dreaded that +the people might rise and avenge the czar, and the people were afraid +that the nobles would once again usurp the government. The nobles and +priests consulted and decided to beg Ivan's pardon and to submit to +any punishment he might impose. Ivan consented to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page117" name="page117"></a>(p. 117)</span> return to +Moscow but on his own terms. This was accepted. After his arrival in +the capital he established a special guard of one thousand men who had +a dog's head and a broom hanging from their saddles, to show that they +were ready to bite and ready to sweep the czar's enemies from off +Russian soil.</p> + +<p>It was then that Ivan began to earn the surname of The Terrible, which +has clung to him ever afterwards. We have his own record in a letter +to the Monastery of St. Cyril, in which he asks the prayers of the +Church for the victims of his vengeance. He appears to have kept a +careful account, as we read, "Kazarine Doubrofsky and his two sons, +with ten men who came to their assistance;" "Twenty men of the village +of Kolmenskoe;" "Eighty of Matveiché." It amazes us to read, +"Remember, Lord, the souls of thy servants, to the number of 1,505 +persons, Novgorodians." The boyards lived in a state of terror; few +among them knew how long they would keep their heads on their +shoulders. Neither rank nor title was a safeguard. The Archbishop of +Moscow was dismissed, and probably murdered. Alexander, George's +widow, and Ivan's sister-in-law, went to the scaffold. Prince Vladimir +and his mother, Ivan's uncle and grand-aunt, were also executed. It +was on this occasion that the "Novgorodians, to the number of 1,505 +persons" were put to death, because Ivan suspected them of a plot to +open the gates to the King of Poland. In 1571, there was another +wholesale execution, in which several of Ivan's latest favorites were +victims.</p> + +<p>The burden of his wrath fell upon the boyards. It may have been for +the purpose of humiliating them and the Churchmen <span class="pagenum"><a id="page118" name="page118"></a>(p. 118)</span> that he +assembled delegates of those two classes to confer with +representatives of the merchants of Moscow and Smolensk, about the war +with Poland. Ivan addressed the assembly in person, and it was decided +that the war should continue.</p> + +<p>It was under his reign that British traders accidentally discovered +the White Sea and the mouth of the Dwina. They came overland to Moscow +where they were well received and secured several privileges. Ivan was +anxious to conclude an offensive-defensive alliance with Elizabeth of +England, and proposed an agreement to furnish each other with an +asylum if either of them should be compelled to fly from the country +through being defeated by an enemy or the rebellion of their subjects. +Elizabeth did not fancy such an alliance, and declined the offer of an +asylum, "finding," as she declared, "by the grace of God no dangers of +the sort in her dominions." Ivan never ceased recurring to, and +pleading for, such an agreement, thus showing his ever present +suspicions.</p> + +<p>After commercial intercourse was established with England, and British +traders settled in Moscow, Ivan continued to show them his favor. He +was himself the greatest merchant of Russia. The furs which he +received from Siberia were sold to the foreign merchants at the fairs. +His agents went into the provinces where they compelled the people to +sell him furs, wax, honey, etc., at such prices as he chose to pay, +and the foreign merchants had to buy them from him at a high price. He +also bought the imported goods and sold them to Russian merchants. +They were not permitted to buy from <span class="pagenum"><a id="page119" name="page119"></a>(p. 119)</span> anybody else, until the +goods of the czar were sold.</p> + +<p>At the beginning of his reign, in 1551, Ivan was preparing an +expedition to Kazan, and in June of the following year he descended +the Volga and laid siege to that city. It was captured after a brave +defense, when a number of the people were massacred and the rest sold +as slaves. This conquest was followed by that of Astrakhan in 1554; +the Volga from its source to its mouth was thereafter a Russian river. +The Cossacks of the Don also submitted to him.</p> + +<p>The European countries bordering on Russia dreaded that country's +growing power. Ivan, after his coronation, sent to western Europe to +engage a number of engineers and mechanics; these men were stopped on +the road, and none of them ever reached Moscow. Sigismund of Poland +even threatened to kill the British merchants on the Baltic, +"because," he said, "if the Muscovite, who is not only our present +adversary, but the eternal enemy of all free countries, should provide +himself with guns, bullets, and munitions; and, above all, with +mechanics who continue to make arms, hitherto unknown in this barbaric +country, he would be a menace to Europe." Ivan, on the other hand, was +equally anxious that the Russians should possess all the advantages of +Europe's superior civilization. This, added to the inherited hostility +between the two countries, caused many wars.</p> + +<p>While Ivan was pursuing his conquests in the south, he was attacked by +Gustavus Wasa, Sweden's famous king, who entertained the same fears as +the King of Poland. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page120" name="page120"></a>(p. 120)</span> The war ended by a commercial treaty +whereby Swedish merchants might trade with India and China by way of +Russia, and those of Russia with Holland, England, and France by way +of Sweden. This war had scarcely ceased before envoys of the Livonian +Order arrived to request a renewal of the truce. Ivan demanded tribute +for Iourief which he claimed as his "patrimony." This was refused, and +war was declared. It was owing to Ivan that this brotherhood was +dissolved and its territory divided. In 1566, a truce was proposed by +Poland.</p> + +<p>It was on this occasion that he called the assembly referred to on +page <a href="#page116">116</a>. The war continued. Ivan was attacked also by Sultan Selim II +of Turkey, in 1569, and the Khan of the Crimea marched straight upon +Moscow, set fire to the suburbs, and destroyed the capital except the +Kremlin. He carried off a hundred thousand prisoners. (1571.) As he +withdrew, he wrote to Ivan: "I burn, I ravage everything on account of +Kazan and Astrakhan. I came to you and burned Moscow. I wished to have +your crown and your head, but you did not show yourself; you declined +a battle and you dare call yourself a Czar of Moscow! Will you live at +peace with me? Yield me up Kazan and Astrakhan. If you have only money +to offer me, it will be useless were it the riches of the world. What +I want is Kazan and Astrakhan! As to the roads to your empire, I have +seen them—I know them." The khan made another invasion the next year, +1572, but was defeated.</p> + +<p>In the same year Sigismund Augustus II of Poland died. There was a +party at Warsaw that proposed to elect <span class="pagenum"><a id="page121" name="page121"></a>(p. 121)</span> Ivan's son, but the +czar wanted Poland for himself. He failed in the attempt, and the Duke +of Anjou, brother of the King of France, was chosen. He did not like +the people and fled; his place was filled by Stephen Batory, Governor +of Transsylvania, a young, capable, and energetic noble. Batory took +in his service a number of trained German and Hungarian soldiers, and +took Polotsk after a brave defense. He also captured several other +towns, but was repulsed at Pskof.</p> + +<p>Ivan sought the mediation of Pope Gregory XIII, and a truce was +concluded in 1582; Ivan ceded Polotsk and all Livonia.</p> + +<p>Ivan, in his manhood, was a man of violent temper. He was never seen +without an iron-tipped staff, which he used freely and recklessly upon +the people around him. Nobody, whatever his rank, was safe from +corporal punishment. He killed his eldest son Ivan with a blow, and +suffered from remorse ever afterward. He left a lasting impression +upon Russia by his reforms. He made a law whereby neither church nor +convents could acquire new lands. He was wonderfully well educated, +considering the neglect of his early youth, and tolerant of religious +opinions. A Presbyterian and a Lutheran church were built at Moscow +with his consent, but in deference to the opposition of the people, +they were removed to the suburbs. He was also the founder of the +<i>streltsi</i> or national guard.</p> + +<p>Ivan died in 1584, after a reign of forty-one years.</p> + + + + +<h2>XIV—RUSSIA UNDER IVAN THE TERRIBLE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page122" name="page122"></a>(p. 122)</span></h2> + + +<p>The reign of Ivan the Terrible is remarkable, first, because it is the +beginning of Russia as we know it in our time; and also because it +occurred at a time when Great Britain was exploring the Atlantic, and +preparing the way for the wonderful expansion of the English-speaking +race, which culminated in the great North American Republic. It was +under this reign, in 1558, that Russia's invasion of Asia began, and +with it a movement eastward, which has not yet ceased.</p> + +<p>It is interesting, therefore, to study the condition of the Russian +people at this important period. Although, as we have seen, the Tartar +yoke did not influence the people directly, because there was no +intercourse between victor and vanquished, the indirect influence was +great, owing to the adoption of Tartar habits or customs by the dukes +and nobles, during their visits to the khan. During this time +intercourse with Europe ceased; hence, in the 16th and 17th centuries, +Russia was more Asiatic than European, although the Russians hated the +victors. Who can say how much influence this has exerted upon Russia's +conquests in Asia?</p> + +<p>Among the old Slavs, the family was the unit from which the State was +built up, and this was confirmed under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page123" name="page123"></a>(p. 123)</span> the Tartar yoke. +There is some similarity between the Empire of Russia and that of +China, for there, too, the family is the unit. In both countries the +Emperor is not only the master, he is also considered as the father +and high priest of his people. Their persons and property are the +emperor's, to do with as he pleases. But in Russia there was a +nobility descended from the former dukes; in China there was none, +except the descendant of Confucius. Yet in Russia these lords, many of +whom traced their descent to Rurik, became in time the slaves of the +czar. They prostrated themselves before him, as they had seen the +courtiers of the khan do. When they presented a petition, they +expressed it by the word <i>tchélobitié</i>, which means "beating of the +forehead," showing that they performed what is known in China as the +<i>kowtow</i>. In addressing the czar, they said, "Order me not to be +chastised; order me to speak a word!" The Grand Dukes of Moscow +considered their territory and the people on it, as their own private +property. They had learned this from the khans. The palace, a mixture +of oriental splendor and barbarism, showed the influence of the +Tartars.</p> + +<p>The people of Russia were divided into classes, the lowest of which +were the slaves or <i>kholop</i>, prisoners of war, men who had sold +themselves, or who were born in slavery. Above them were the peasants, +born on the estate of a noble, but still known as free men. Then came +the peasants who farmed the land of an owner, but these were few. Much +of the land was owned by the several mirs or villages, but in the +course of time they were assigned to gentlemen, who were able to serve +in the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page124" name="page124"></a>(p. 124)</span> army without pay, being supported by the revenues +derived from these villages. Gradually these gentlemen looked upon the +land of the mir as their own property, but the peasants never did lose +the conviction that the mir was the real proprietor. In Ivan's time +and later, the mir and not the individual, was held responsible for +the tax to the czar, for the free labor furnished to the lord, and for +his dues. The mir, therefore, was absolute master over every +inhabitant of the village, and this power was vested in the <i>starost</i>. +The peasant gradually descended into a beast of burden, who was not +even a human being, but merely a productive force for the benefit of +the State and of the lord.</p> + +<p>A Russian town consisted, first of the <i>kremlin</i>, a fortress of wood +which, when required, was defended by "men of the service"; then came +the suburbs, built around the kremlin, and inhabited by the people. +They were governed by a <i>voïevod</i> or governor, appointed by the czar, +or by a starost or mayor, elected by the nobles, priests, and +privileged citizens. The principal duty of the citizens was to pay the +taxes, and therefore they were forbidden to leave the city. Under the +Czar Alexis, the penalty for such offense was death.</p> + +<p>The merchants did not form a separate class. They are known in Russian +as <i>gosti</i> or guests, thus showing that, notwithstanding the old and +honorable record of Novgorod and Kief, the Tartar yoke and subsequent +arbitrary rule of the grand dukes had ruined trade or left it in the +hands of aliens. Ivan the Terrible called them the moujiks of +commerce. Fletcher, an Englishman who spent many years in Moscow under +Ivan IV, gives the following <span class="pagenum"><a id="page125" name="page125"></a>(p. 125)</span> curious pen picture: "Often you +will see them trembling with fear, lest a boyard should know what they +have to sell. I have seen them at times, when they had spread out +their wares so that you might make a better choice, look all around +them,—as if they feared an enemy would surprise them and lay hands on +them. If I asked them the cause, they would say to me, 'I was afraid +that there might be a noble or one of the sons of boyards here: they +would take away my merchandise by force.'"</p> + +<p>The Russian women were kept secluded in women's quarters as they are +in China, but they remained a member of their own family. A wife's +duty was "to obey her husband as the slave obeys his master," and she +was taught to think of herself as her master's property. He had the +right to punish her as he did his children or his slaves. The priest +Silvester advises the husband not to use sticks that are too thick or +tipped with iron, nor to whip her before his men, but to correct her +moderately and in private. No Russian woman dared object to being +beaten. A Russian proverb says: "I love you like my soul, and I dust +you like my jacket."</p> + +<p>The men wore oriental tunics or robes, and a long beard; the women +painted their faces. Ivan the Terrible said that to shave the beard +was "a sin that the blood of all the martyrs could not cleanse. Was it +not to defile the image of man created by God?"</p> + +<p>There was a general belief in magic and witchcraft; sorcerers were +burned alive in a cage. Ivan, although in advance of his age, was not +free from superstition. The art of medicine was, of course, still in +its infancy, and those <span class="pagenum"><a id="page126" name="page126"></a>(p. 126)</span> who practiced it were in constant +danger of their lives, because if they did not cure a patient, they +might suffer for it.</p> + +<p>Both the nobles and the people were addicted to the vice of +drunkenness. No one paid any attention when a person, rich or poor, +young or old, fell down in the street from the effects of drink. This +is what the priests said of this vice: "My brethren, what is worse +than drunkenness? You lose memory and reason like a madman who does +not know what he is doing. The drunkard is senseless; he lies like a +corpse. If you speak to him he does not answer. Think of his poor soul +which grows foul in its vile body which is its prison.... To drink is +lawful and is to the glory of God, who has given us wine to make us +rejoice."</p> + +<p>The Metropolitan of Moscow, until a Patriarch was appointed, was +supposed to be the head of the Church, but the czar held the real +power. There were two classes of priests: The Black Clergy lived as +monks in monasteries, some of which were exceedingly wealthy; they +were forbidden to marry, and the bishops were appointed from among +them. The White Clergy lived among the people and were compelled to +marry. Most of them were grossly ignorant. The same Englishman quoted +before, Mr. Fletcher, says of these priests: "As for exhorting or +instructing their flock, they have neither the habit of it nor the +talent for it, for all the clergy are as profoundly ignorant of the +Word of God as of all other learning."</p> + +<p>The revenues of the Empire consisted of a tax on every sixty measures +of corn; of a house-tax, or tax on every fire; <span class="pagenum"><a id="page127" name="page127"></a>(p. 127)</span> the +customhouse dues, and what remained of the municipal taxes after +paying expenses; of a tax on public baths; the farming out of lands +belonging to the crown; the fines and confiscations in the "Court of +the Brigands;" and finally of the tribute paid by thirty-six towns and +their landed possessions "belonging to the Crown."</p> + +<p>The Courts of Justice belonged to the Middle Ages; tortures were +applied similar to those employed by the Spanish Inquisition. A wife +who murdered her husband "was buried alive up to her neck." Heretics +were burned at the stake; sorcerers were burned in an iron cage, and +coiners had liquid metal poured down their throats. A noble who killed +a moujik was fined or sometimes whipped; but he might kill as many +slaves as he pleased, because they were his property.</p> + +<p>The Russian infantry, so famous under the early Norsemen, had given +way to cavalry, in imitation of the Tartars. The Imperial Guard was +composed of 8,000 young nobles. The "men-at-arms" were mounted, but +received no pay beyond the revenue of their lands, which they held in +return for their military service. The army numbered about 80,000, +and, with a levy among the peasants, could be brought up to 300,000. +There was, besides, the irregular cavalry of the Don Cossacks, and of +the Tartars. Such infantry as there was, consisted of peasants from +the crown lands, churches, and convents; the national guard, and +foreign soldiers or officers.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page128" name="page128"></a>(p. 128)</span> +<a id="img010" name="img010"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img010.jpg" width="400" height="525" alt="Feodor" title="Feodor"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Feodor</p> + + + + +<h2>XV—FEODOR, THE LAST OF RURIK'S DESCENDANTS. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page129" name="page129"></a>(p. 129)</span></h2> + + +<p>Ivan the Terrible left two sons, Feodor, the son of Anastasia Romanof, +and Dmitri, a child, the son of his seventh wife. Feodor was neither a +strong-minded nor a very able man. He was married to Irene Godounof, +and, following the usual custom, his wife's relations held the +principal offices of the government. Gradually the czar's authority +passed into the hands of Prince Boris Godounof, Irene's brother, a +very ambitious and unscrupulous man. Wizards had foretold that Boris +would be czar, but that his reign would last only seven years, and he +did all he could to aid his destiny.</p> + +<p>He first caused Feodor's half-brother, Dmitri, to be sent with his +mother and her relations to Ouglitch, where they would be out of the +way. He also caused the Metropolitan to be dismissed, and had a friend +appointed in his place. He aroused the higher nobles against him, and +then made an effort to make friends with the smaller nobility,—at the +expense of the poor peasants. According to law, these people were +free; that is, when the contract with a landowner expired, they could +move where they pleased, and the large owners could offer better terms +than those who held small estates. But without labor, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page130" name="page130"></a>(p. 130)</span> the +land was worthless and Russia, at the time, was so sparsely populated, +that every hand counted. The object of the government was not to open +up new lands, so as to create prosperity, but to provide for its +current wants by seeing that the taxes were paid, and that the army +was kept up to its standard. How could the men-at-arms, that is the +small nobility, defray their own expenses while serving, if their +revenues failed from lack of labor? Boris Godounof, therefore, made a +law forbidding peasants to go from one estate to another. They were +tied to the ground, and this was the first step to make serfs of them. +The peasants did object; they had been accustomed to change service on +St. George's day, and that day remained for many years one of deep +sorrow. There was no rebellion, but a great many fled, and joined the +Cossacks. After some years the law was changed so that peasants were +permitted to change from one <i>small</i> estate to another.</p> + +<p>Another change under Feodor's reign was the appointment of a Patriarch +as the head of the Greek Church under the czar. He was placed above +the several Metropolitans, and thus the Church secured more unity.</p> + +<p>Feodor had no heirs, and his health was bad. It was, therefore, to +young Dmitri at Ouglitch that the great nobles looked for relief from +Godounof's tyranny. In 1591, this man sent hired assassins to Ouglitch +and the youngest son of Ivan was murdered. Some of the hirelings were +arrested by the people, and put to death. There was not even a doubt +as to the facts. But Godounof ordered an investigation by his own +friends; they declared that the young heir had committed suicide in a +fit <span class="pagenum"><a id="page131" name="page131"></a>(p. 131)</span> of insanity, and that the people of Ouglitch had put +innocent men to death. The assassination of Dmitri's relatives, and +the depopulation of Ouglitch made further inquiry impossible.</p> + +<p>Stephen Batory who had worsted Ivan the Terrible, died in 1586, and +the throne of Poland was once again vacant. Godounof tried hard to +have Feodor elected, but the Poles feared that the czar might attach +their kingdom to Moscow like a sleeve to a coat. Besides, the Roman +Catholic electors did not like the thought of having a king belonging +to the Greek Church; last of all, money counted in these elections, +and Godounof was a very saving man. The result was that the Prince of +Sweden was elected, and that war with Sweden broke out.</p> + +<p>The Poles, fearing lest Sweden should grow too powerful, held aloof; +as a consequence, Russia gained back the towns which had been lost +under Ivan the Terrible. Godounof made an effort to bring about a war +between Poland and Sweden, but he only succeeded in arousing the +suspicion and dislike of both countries.</p> + +<p>Feodor died in 1598; with him the house of Rurik, the old Norse +Viking, ceased to exist.</p> + +<p>By trickery and knavery, Boris Godounof was elected czar by the +<i>douma</i> or council of nobles, a body presided over by his friend the +Patriarch, and containing many of his partisans. The great nobles, +many of whom traced their descent to Rurik, objected to a czar, whom +they considered and called an upstart. But Boris displayed cruelty as +well as severity. Feodor, the eldest of the noble family of the +Romanofs, was forced to become a monk <span class="pagenum"><a id="page132" name="page132"></a>(p. 132)</span> and his wife a nun. He +took the name of Philarete, and she that of Marfa.</p> + +<p>Godounof did reign seven years, according to the wizard's prediction, +but it was a stormy time for Russia. A young adventurer named Gregory +Otrépief, pretended that he was the murdered Dmitri, and secured a +large following. The troops sent against him "had no hands to fight +but only feet to fly." At Godounof's death, in 1605, he confided his +son and heir to a favorite named Basmanof, who turned traitor, joined +the false Dmitri, and caused Godounof's widow and son to be murdered. +Otrépief, who lacked neither courage nor ability, was made czar, but +he reigned little over a month, when he, too, was murdered by a band +of nobles under the leadership of Chouïski. This man seized the throne +in 1606. The people in the country, owing to its vast extent and the +poor roads, heard of Otrépief's coronation, his death, and the +succession of Chouïski almost at the same time, and anarchy followed. +At the same time Russia was involved in a war with Poland, at the time +when a second false Dmitri made his appearance. The Cossacks and a +host of Polish adventurers joined him, and he laid siege to the +immensely wealthy Troïtsa monastery, where the monks defended +themselves for sixteen months, and he was forced to withdraw. Affairs +came to such a pass that the people of Moscow "humbly requested the +czar to abdicate, because he was not successful, and also because he +was to blame for the shedding of Christian blood." Chouïski was forced +to yield, and soon after entered a monastery as a monk.</p> + +<p>Two candidates appeared for the vacant throne; the second <span class="pagenum"><a id="page133" name="page133"></a>(p. 133)</span> +false Dmitri and Vladislas, the second son of Sigismund, King of +Poland. The douma, not fancying the idea that an impostor should rule +over them, invited the hetman of a Polish army to Moscow, to discuss +the other candidate. This hetman promised in name of the prince to +maintain the Greek Church and the privileges of the three orders, +nobles, priests, and people, and that the law-making power should be +shared by the czar and the douma; that no one should be executed +without a trial, or deprived of his dignity without good reason; and +finally, that Russians might go abroad to be educated if they so +desired. Vladislas was then elected czar on condition that he should +enter the Greek Church, and two envoys, one of them Philarete Romanof +who had risen to the rank of Metropolitan, left for the Polish camp at +Smolensk to complete the necessary arrangements. The douma invited the +hetman to occupy the kremlin with his shoulders. He did so, taking the +late Czar Chouïski and his two brothers as hostages.</p> + +<p>At Smolensk a difficulty occurred: the King of Poland wanted the +Russian throne for himself. He also asked the envoys to cede Smolensk +to Poland; they refused, and in turn asked that Vladislas should leave +at once for Moscow. The king refused his consent, and began to use +money. He found many Russian traitors willing to accept it, but the +envoys remained firm.</p> + +<p>Soon after this, the second false Dmitri died, and the people began to +show an interest in the dispute with Sigismund. Leading men at Moscow +and Smolensk wrote to the provinces, begging their friends not to +recognize the King of Poland as czar. Men-at-arms gathered, and +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page134" name="page134"></a>(p. 134)</span> when an army of them drew near Moscow, the Poles fortified +the Kremlin. At this time a quarrel arose between the Polish troops +and the people, and some 7,000 persons were killed. The Russians made +a stand in the suburbs, when the Poles set fire to the city, and the +greater part of Moscow was burned.</p> + +<p>Sigismund ordered the arrest of the two envoys who were taken to +Marienburg in Prussia under escort. Smolensk fell soon after into his +hands, and the king returned to Warsaw which he entered in triumph +with the last Czar Chouïski a prisoner in his train. By this time the +Russians were aroused; 100,000 men-at-arms gathered at Moscow and +besieged the Poles in the Kremlin. Meanwhile Sweden had declared war, +giving as reason the election of Vladislas, and had captured the ports +on the Baltic. The monks of Troïtsa, whose heroic defense against the +second false Dmitri had made the convent famous, sent letters to all +the Russian cities bidding them fight for their country and religion. +When this letter was read in public at Nishni Novgorod, a butcher, +Kouzma Minine spoke up: "If we wish to save the Muscovite Empire," he +said, "we must spare neither our lands nor our goods; let us sell our +houses and put our wives and children out to service; let us seek a +man who will fight for the national faith, and march under his +banner." He set the example by giving one-third of all he possessed, +and others followed. Those who refused to contribute were compelled to +do so. Minine was elected treasurer; he accepted on condition that his +orders should be obeyed without delay. Believing that the leadership +should be given to a noble, Minine went <span class="pagenum"><a id="page135" name="page135"></a>(p. 135)</span> to Prince Pojarski +who lived in the neighborhood. Pojarski accepted the command, and +ordered three days of fasting and prayer. The streltsi were equipped +as well as the men-at-arms; but the services of Cossacks and foreign +mercenaries were refused.</p> + +<p>An army was collected and marched toward Moscow, with bishops and +monks carrying holy eikons at the head; at Iaroslaf they were +reënforced by other troops. They laid siege to the Kremlin; an attempt +to relieve the fortress by the Poles was defeated. At last the +garrison was forced to surrender. Among the Russian prisoners who +regained their liberty was a fifteen-year-old boy, Michael Romanof, +the son of Philarete and Marfa.</p> + +<p>Sigismund was on the way to reënforce the garrison, but hearing of its +surrender, he fell back. An assembly was convoked to elect a czar. It +was composed of delegates of the clergy, the nobles, the men-at-arms, +the merchants, towns, and districts. There was much bickering, but all +were agreed that no alien should be presented. When the name of +Michael Romanof was called, it was received with enthusiasm, and he +was declared elected. (1613.) The delegates remembered the relation +between his family and Ivan the Terrible, and the services rendered by +his father, the Metropolitan Philarete. There is a story that the King +of Poland, when he heard of Michael's election, tried to kidnap him at +Kostroma, and that a peasant guide led the party astray on a dark +night. When the Poles discovered it, he was struck dead. This is the +subject of a famous opera "A Life for the Czar."</p> + +<p>Russia's efforts to resume intercourse with Europe, which during the +Tartar yoke had been suspended, were continued <span class="pagenum"><a id="page136" name="page136"></a>(p. 136)</span> under +Godounof. He sent an ambassador to Queen Elizabeth with a letter, in +which he says:—"I have learned that the Queen had furnished help to +the Turks against the Emperor of Germany. We are astonished at it, as +to act thus is not proper for Christian sovereigns; and you, our +well-beloved sister, you ought not in the future to enter into +relationships of friendship with Mussulman princes, nor to help them +in any way, whether with men or money; but on the contrary should +desire and insist that all the great Christian potentates should have +a good understanding, union, and strong friendship, and unite against +the Mussulmans, till the hand of the Christian rise and that of the +Mussulman is abased." Judging from Elizabeth's character, it is likely +that she shrugged her shoulders as she read this sermon. During the +period of Russia's internal troubles, and owing to the vacancy of the +throne, the relations with Europe were again suspended.</p> + + + + +<h2>XVI—MICHAEL FEODOROVITCH OR MICHAEL, THE SON OF THEODORE, THE FIRST +ROMANOF. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page137" name="page137"></a>(p. 137)</span></h2> + + +<p>Fifteen years of anarchy left Russia in disorder. The boyards had done +as they pleased since there was no one to control them. The peasants +who asked for nothing but a simple existence, had seen their crops +trampled under foot, and their homes laid in ruins. It needed a strong +hand to restore order; more than could be expected from a +fifteen-year-old boy, who had neither the iron will of Ivan the +Terrible, nor the advantage of having grown up with the conviction +that he was the Master. Besides, although his election had been +regular, the Don Cossacks and others refused to recognize him as the +czar. On the other hand, the patriots stood by him. But the conditions +were such that a foreigner in Moscow wrote at the time: "Oh that God +would open the eyes of the czar as He opened those of Ivan, otherwise +Muscovy is lost!"</p> + +<p>There was no money in the treasury, and the men-at-arms demanded pay +because they received no revenues from their ruined estates. The czar +and the clergy wrote to the Russian towns begging them for money and +for troops to help the government, and a generous response was +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page138" name="page138"></a>(p. 138)</span> made. The people of the provinces, anxious to see law and +order restored, rose in favor of the czar, and Astrakhan sent a rebel +chief to prison. He was shortly afterwards tried and executed.</p> + +<p>While the people were thus aiding the government, no time was lost in +dealing with the foreign enemy. In 1614, Michael sent envoys to +Holland to request help in men and money. The Dutch gave a small sum, +regretting that they could do no more as they had just ended a war +that had lasted forty-one years (1568-1609); they promised that they +would persuade Sweden to come to an understanding with Russia. Another +embassy went to James I of England, who was told that the Poles had +murdered British merchants and plundered their warehouses. This was a +falsehood, because the envoys knew that the outrage had been committed +by Cossacks and a Russian mob, but they hoped that the king would not +know it. James did not, and advanced 20,000 rubles. After this British +merchants demanded concessions and privileges in Russia, but as they +asked too much, they received nothing. Sweden, urged by England and +Holland, concluded with Russia the Peace of Stolbovo in 1617. Sweden +received an indemnity of 20,000 rubles, and surrendered Novgorod and +other towns.</p> + +<p>The war with Poland was then continued more vigorously, and in 1618 a +truce of fourteen years and six months was arranged. It was understood +that this was temporary, because the King of Poland still claimed the +throne of Russia, and refused to recognize Michael. But the prisoners +were released and Philarete, the czar's father, returned to Moscow, +where his presence was soon felt <span class="pagenum"><a id="page140" name="page140"></a>(p. 140)</span> by the nobles. The most +independent were arrested and sent into exile. So long as Philarete +assisted his son, there was no disorder.</p> + +<a id="img011" name="img011"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img011.jpg" width="400" height="502" alt="Michael Feodorovitch" title="Michael Feodorovitch"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Michael Feodorovitch</p> + +<p>In 1618, the great struggle between Protestant and Roman Catholic +Europe began and Sweden, which was to take such a glorious part in it, +sought Russia's aid. Gustavus wrote to Michael telling him that if the +Catholic league should prevail, the Greek Church would be in danger. +"When your neighbor's house is on fire," he wrote, "you must bring +water and try to extinguish it, to guarantee your own safety. May your +Czarian Majesty help your neighbors to protect yourself." Sound as the +advice was, Russia had enough to do at home. Sultan Osman of Turkey +offered an alliance against Poland, when Michael convoked the Estates. +The deputies beat their foreheads, and implored the czar "to hold +himself firm for the holy churches of God, for his czarian honor, and +for their own country against the enemy. The men-at-arms were ready to +fight, and the merchants to give money." The war was postponed when +news arrived that the Turks had been defeated.</p> + +<p>Sigismund of Poland died in 1632, and his son Vladislas was elected. +The following year Philarete died, and the nobles, released from his +stern supervision, resumed their former behavior. The war between the +two neighbors recommenced, but did not last long. When a new truce was +concluded Michael's title as czar was recognized by Vladislas.</p> + +<p>It was entirely the fault of the Polish nobles that Poland lost +Lithuania or White Russia. The only excuse that can be offered, is the +spirit of religious persecution which <span class="pagenum"><a id="page141" name="page141"></a>(p. 141)</span> was rampant all over +Europe in the seventeenth century. It was the ceaseless effort of the +Poles to force the Lithuanians from the Greek into the Roman Church +that drove them into the arms of Russia; but it was not until after +the death of Michael, in 1645, that the consequences of this +short-sighted policy were to show.</p> + +<p>Michael was succeeded by his son, who ascended the throne as Alexis +Michaelovitch. He was better educated than his father had been and +resembled him in good nature. He had been taught by a tutor named +Morozof, who during thirty years exerted a great influence over his +pupil. When Alexis married into the Miloslavski family, its members +secured the most influential positions, according to well-established +custom. Morozof did not oppose them; instead he courted and married +the czarina's sister, and thus became the czar's brother-in-law.</p> + +<p>The wars in which Russia was engaged and the necessity of maintaining +a large and well-equipped army, together with the increasing expenses +of the Court, and above all, the dishonest practices of the officials +rendered the burden of taxation so unbearable, that several revolts +broke out. In 1648, the people of Moscow rose and demanded the +surrender of a judge and another officer, both of whom were +notoriously corrupt; the two men were promptly murdered. Then the +popular fury turned upon Morozof, who would have suffered the same +fate, had not the czar helped him to escape. The government was +helpless. In some places, such as Pskof, Novgorod, and elsewhere, the +streltsi joined the people, and Russia was for some time at the mercy +of an enemy.</p> + +<p>It <span class="pagenum"><a id="page142" name="page142"></a>(p. 142)</span> was fortunate for Russia that just at that time, Poland +had serious trouble at home. A Cossack, owner of a large estate, +educated and brave, was ill-treated and imprisoned by a Polish +landowner; and his little son was publicly whipped. He went to Warsaw +and laid his complaint before the king. Vladislas told him plainly +that the nobles were beyond his control; then, pointing to his sword, +he asked if the Cossack could not help himself. The Cossack took the +hint, went home, and when the Polish landowners tried to arrest him, +he fled to the Khan of the Crimea, interested him in his cause and +returned at the head of a Mussulman army. Lithuania rose in rebellion +against Poland; the governors and nobles, and especially the priests +of the Catholic Church, were hunted down, and those of the Greek +Church took revenge for recent injuries and insults.</p> + +<p>Vladislas died, and the Diet elected his brother John Casimir. He +tried to reduce the very serious rebellion by promises, but there was +too deep a hatred between the two churches. Meanwhile order had been +restored in Russia, when the people of Lithuania wrote to the czar +begging him to take them under his protection. Alexis convoked the +Estates, told them that he had been insulted by Poland, and that the +Poles were persecuting the members of the Greek Church. They declared +in favor of war, and a boyard was sent to Kief to receive the oath of +allegiance. The people were willing provided their liberties would be +respected. This the czar promised. He declared that the privileges of +the Assembly and of the towns would be maintained, that only natives +would be employed in the administration and in taxation.</p> + +<p>Poland <span class="pagenum"><a id="page143" name="page143"></a>(p. 143)</span> was now sorely pressed. Charles X of Sweden invaded +the kingdom and took two of its capitals. The Cossack and Lithuanians +entered it from the south, and the Czar Alexis at the head of his own +army attacked it on the east. He maintained strict discipline so that +the Polish Governors said, "Moscow makes war in quite a new way, and +conquers the people by the clemency and good-nature of the czar." The +towns of White Russia opened their gates to his army, and Smolensk +surrendered after a five weeks' siege. The Swedes captured Warsaw, the +last capital of the misruled kingdom.</p> + +<p>It was the jealousy of its enemies that saved Poland this time. Alexis +entered into a truce and attacked Sweden. This war was carried on from +1656 until 1661, and ended by the peace of Cardis whereby neither +country gained any advantage. The Poles, seeing the danger they had +incurred, rallied, and once again war broke out with Russia. It was +carried on with various success until both countries were exhausted. +In 1661, a thirteen years' truce was concluded, whereby Russia +restored Lithuania, but kept Little Russia on the left bank of the +Dnieper, together with Kief and Smolensk.</p> + +<p>In 1668, a revolt was organized by the Metropolitan of Kief, who +preferred the jurisdiction of the Patriarch of Constantinople to that +of Moscow. As a result, Little Russia was subject to all the horrors +of war, but the Russian power prevailed in the end. Then the Cossacks +of the Don broke out, and until 1671 the territory between that river +and the Volga suffered terribly.</p> + +<p>Alexis' reign was remarkable for the introduction of so-called +"reforms" in the Church, which were confined wholly <span class="pagenum"><a id="page144" name="page144"></a>(p. 144)</span> to +ceremonies and externals. The czar supported the "reformer" Nicon, and +those who did not agree with him were called <i>religious madmen</i> and +suffered persecution. The monasteries near Archangel rebelled and +troops were sent against them; but it was eight months before the +sturdy monks capitulated.</p> + +<p>Alexis continued his father's efforts to reëstablish intercourse with +Western Europe. But the West was only recovering from the terrible +Thirty Years' War, so that little interest was shown.</p> + +<p>Alexis had married twice. From the first marriage he had two sons +Feodor and Ivan, and six daughters; by his second wife he had one son, +Peter, and two daughters. When he died, in 1676, he was succeeded by +his eldest son Feodor.</p> + +<p>Feodor Alexievitch, the third czar of the Romanof family, reigned only +six years, from 1676 to 1682. It was under his reign that a truce for +twenty years with Turkey, restored peace to White Russia.</p> + +<p>Hitherto Russia had suffered from the rivalry resulting from disputes +caused by precedence of birth; generals had lost battles, because they +refused to serve under men whom they looked upon as inferiors. At an +assembly of the higher clergy, it was resolved to burn the Book of +Rank, and the czar made a law that any one disputing about his rank, +should lose it as well as his property.</p> + +<p>To protect the Greek Church from dividing into sects, an academy was +founded at Moscow where the Slav, Latin, and Greek languages were +taught.</p> + + + + +<h2>XVII—EARLY YEARS OF PETER THE GREAT (PETER ALEXIEVITCH). <span class="pagenum"><a id="page145" name="page145"></a>(p. 145)</span></h2> + + +<p>Feodor died childless, and should have been succeeded by his little +brother Ivan, but the child was of unsound mind. The other son of +Alexis, Peter, was the child of his last wife, and nine years old at +the time. The question about the succession was discussed in the +Council, and decided in Peter's favor, and his mother Natalia became +Regent. Among Peter's half sisters was one, Sophia, twenty-five years +old, who did not propose to submit to this decision. She took part in +Feodor's funeral, in defiance of the law which forbade women to appear +in public, and after it schemed and plotted to form a party in her +favor. A rumor was spread that the czarina's brother had seized the +throne and that Ivan had been murdered. The people of Moscow rose, and +the streltsi marched to the kremlin where the appearance of Natalia +with the two children made the mob hesitate. Unfortunately Prince +Dolgorouki addressed the men in violent language; they seized him on +their pikes and killed him. They then stabbed the czarina's foster +father, Matvéef, in her presence, and sacked the palace, murdering +many of its inmates. One of Natalia's brothers was thrown out of a +window and caught on the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page146" name="page146"></a>(p. 146)</span> points of the lances of the +streltsi who were waiting below. Natalia's father and brother were +taken from her; Cyril, the father, was sent to a monastery and her +brother Ivan was tortured and cut to pieces, although the czarina went +on her knees begging for his life. The streltsi acted under authority +from Sophia when they committed these outrages. After this rioting had +continued seven days, the streltsi sent their commandant Khovanski to +the douma, to demand that there should be two czars, Ivan, with Peter +as his assistant. The douma did not fancy the idea,—but there were +the streltsi with their pikes, and they carried the day.</p> + +<p>From this time it was Sophia who was the real czar. She reigned in +name of the two half-brothers, and showed herself in public, insisting +upon being present on every occasion. The Russians as a rule are not +fond of new fashions; they did not like this, and objected so strongly +that Sophia was forced to give way. Thereafter the two young czars sat +in public on the throne, but it was constructed in such a manner that +Sophia could hear and see without being visible.</p> + +<p>She shocked every Russian by her manners until the streltsi began to +speak of her as "the scandalous person." They hated her when she +persecuted the <i>raskolnik</i> or Old Believers, that is, the men who +objected to the reforms of Nicon. At last she thought that it was not +safe for her to remain at Moscow; she fled to the strong convent at +Troïtsa, taking with her the czarina and the two little tsars, and +there summoned the men-at-arms whom she could trust. Khovanski, the +commandant of the streltsi, was summoned before her; he was arrested +on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page147" name="page147"></a>(p. 147)</span> the way, and put to death with his son. The streltsi were +considering another revolt, when they were seized with a panic; +instead of marching upon Troïtsa, they went there to beg her pardon. +Sophia forgave them, but their leaders were executed.</p> + +<p>Sophia trusted the government to two favorites, Prince Galitsyne who +was at the head of Foreign Affairs, and Chaklovity whom she made +commandant of the streltsi. Galitsyne tried hard to form an alliance +among the Christian powers against the Turks and Tartars. His scheme +failed because Louis XIV of France kept the whole of Western Europe in +turmoil by his constant wars with the House of Austria, and the +Christian princes had to look after their own interests. He was more +fortunate in Poland where John Sobieski was king. A treaty of +"perpetual" peace was concluded between Russia and Poland at +Androussovo, in 1686, and an alliance was entered into against the +Turks.</p> + +<p>In 1687, an army of 100,000 Russians and 50,000 Cossacks marched +against the Crimea. The Tartars had burned the steppes, and the +Russians suffered such severe hardships that they were forced to +retreat. The hetman of the Cossacks was accused of treachery, and +deported to Siberia, when Mazeppa, who had been his secretary, was +appointed hetman. In the spring of 1689, the Russians under Galitsyne +and the Cossacks under Mazeppa started again for the Crimea, but they +had no better success than before.</p> + +<p>Peter, who was born in 1673, was then sixteen years old, but being +tall and strongly built, he looked much older. He was bright and +anxious to learn, and at an early <span class="pagenum"><a id="page148" name="page148"></a>(p. 148)</span> age had shown that he +possessed a will of his own. He had read much, but his tutor, a man +named Zorof, had allowed him to have his own way, and when the boy +grew up to be a man, he made that tutor "the arch-priest of fools." +When the boy was tired, Zorof would allow him to put his work aside, +and would read to him about the great deeds of his father Alexis, and +of those of Ivan the Terrible, their campaigns, battles, and sieges; +how they endured privations better than the common soldiers, and how +they added other territory to Russia. He also learned Latin, German, +and Dutch. He afterwards complained that his education was neglected, +because he was allowed to do as he pleased. He chose his own +companions, and as he did not like to be confined within the palace +grounds, he roamed in the streets and often became acquainted with men +whom he would not have met in the palace, Russians, Dutch, Swiss, +English, and Germans. His usual attendants were Boris Galitsyne and +other young nobles with whom he played at soldier. He pressed the +palace servants into the ranks and had them drilled in European +tactics. Peter took lessons in geometry and fortification; he +constructed small forts which were besieged and defended by the young +players. Sometimes the game became earnest; blows were given and +received, when Peter took his share without a murmur, even when he was +wounded as sometimes happened.</p> + +<p>At first Peter did not like the water; no Russian does; but he +mastered his dislike. Once, when he saw a stranded English boat, he +sent for a boatbuilder to make him a sailboat and to teach him how to +manage it. He took <span class="pagenum"><a id="page149" name="page149"></a>(p. 149)</span> a great fancy to sailing, and often took +his boat on the Yaousa, and afterwards on Lake Peréiaslaf, to the +terror of his mother. Thus Peter grew up, healthy in body and strong +of mind, until his ambitious half-sister Sophia began to think what +would become of her when the boy should be czar. She had styled +herself Autocrat of all the Russias and did not like the idea of +surrendering the title. For some time she was appeased when her +courtiers told her that the boy cared for nothing except to amuse +himself.</p> + +<p>When he was sixteen years old, Peter asserted himself. Sophia had +ordered a triumphal entry for Prince Galitsyne and the army of the +Crimea, when Peter forbade her to leave the palace. She paid no +attention to his orders, but headed the procession of the returned +army. Peter saw that this meant war to the knife, and left for +Préobajenskoé.</p> + +<p>As soon as she heard of this, Sophia determined to seize the throne. +She intended to attack the palace, kill Peter's friends and arrest his +mother, and after that to deal with the young czar as circumstances +demanded. She sent for the commandant of the streltsi who agreed to +sound the men. He told them that Sophia's life was in danger, and that +she had fled to a convent. The latter part of the story was true, as +she had in fact retreated to such a place, from which she sent letters +to the streltsi to come to her rescue. The commandant failed to secure +more than 500 men; the other streltsi told him that there should be an +investigation.</p> + +<p>Two of the streltsi went to Peter and reported to him what was going +on, whereupon he moved to the famous Troïtsa <span class="pagenum"><a id="page150" name="page150"></a>(p. 150)</span> monastery. The +Patriarch, foreign officers serving in the army, his playmates, and +even a regiment of streltsi came to him to offer their services. Peter +issued orders for the arrest of Sophia's favorite, the commandant of +the militia. She begged the Patriarch to interfere but met with a +refusal. The commandant under torture confessed the plot, and was +beheaded. Sophia's other friends were arrested; some were executed +while others were sent to prison; she herself was confined in the +convent where she had found a retreat. Peter was now the czar, +although he conducted the government in his own name and in that of +his weak-minded brother Ivan.</p> + +<p>If Sophia had shocked the Russians by leaving the seclusion of the +women's apartments, Peter's acts were likely to astonish them still +more and to give offense. Rowing in a boat, instead of sitting in it +surrounded by his grandees; working like a carpenter, instead of +merely giving his orders through a courtier, and fighting with +foreigners and grooms, were acts so unlike to what a czar should do, +that Peter made a host of enemies. Little did he care! No sooner was +he free to do as he pleased, than he rushed off to Archangel, the only +port Russia could call her own, and there he saw salt water for the +first time. He mingled freely with captains of the foreign merchant +vessels and went out in their boats. On one occasion, he was out in a +storm and came near being drowned; but this did not prevent "Skipper +Peter Alexievitch," from putting out to sea again. Once he piloted +three Dutch vessels. The young czar gave orders to construct a +dockyard and to have boats built.</p> + +<p>Peter <span class="pagenum"><a id="page151" name="page151"></a>(p. 151)</span> longed for ports on an open sea, a sea that would not +freeze in winter. There were three which Russia might reasonably hope +to own some day, the Baltic, the Black, and the Caspian Sea. The +Baltic belonged to Sweden, and Peter feared difficulties in that +direction; but the Black Sea belonged to the Turks, and Peter quite +understood that a war with the infidels would be popular in Russia. He +wished to visit Western Europe; to see for himself the wonders of +which he had heard foreigners speak; but he made up his mind not to go +until he could appear as a victorious general.</p> + +<p>Thus Peter made preparations for war with the Khan of the Crimea. He +did not command his army; what he wanted, was to learn, and therefore +he went as the gunner Peter Alexievitch. That did not prevent him from +keeping a sharp eye on his generals. Chief-engineer Jansen received a +sound whipping from him and deserted to the enemy. For this and other +causes he was compelled to raise the siege of Azof and to fall back to +Russia. His mother died in 1694. He returned to Russia in 1695, and +notwithstanding his defeat, he ordered a triumphal entry into Moscow; +but he felt very sore. The following year, 1696, his half-brother Ivan +died, and Peter was the sole Autocrat of all the Russias.</p> + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page152" name="page152"></a>(p. 152)</span> +<a id="img012" name="img012"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img012.jpg" width="400" height="568" alt="Peter the Great" title="Peter the Great"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Peter the Great</p> + + + + +<h2>XVIII—PETER THE GREAT AND HIS REIGN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page153" name="page153"></a>(p. 153)</span></h2> + + +<p>Far from being discouraged by his defeat, Peter was more than ever +resolved to have a port on the Black Sea. He introduced reforms in the +army, and while doing this, he ordered a fleet of boats to be built on +the Don, and set 26,000 men to work on them. He also sent to Holland +and other parts of Europe for officers and gunners, and superintended +everything. It was at this time that he wrote to Moscow that, +"following the command God gave Adam, he was earning his bread by the +sweat of his brow." When he was ready, the army and the boats went +down the Don; Azof was blockaded by sea and by land, and forced to +capitulate. When the news arrived at Moscow, there was general +rejoicing, and even at Warsaw in Poland the people cheered for the +czar. The army returned to Moscow under triumphal arches, the generals +seated in magnificent sledges. A young officer, Peter Alexievitch, +recently promoted to captain, was marching in the ranks.</p> + +<p>Peter wished to make of Azof a Russian town in the shortest time +possible. He secured from the douma an order by which three thousand +families were moved to that port, and streltsi were dispatched to +garrison it. The czar wanted a naval force, and moved by his energy, +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page154" name="page154"></a>(p. 154)</span> the Patriarch, the prelates, and the monasteries offered to +give one ship for every 5,000 serfs owned by them. This example was +followed by nobles, officials, and merchants, and once more Peter sent +to the west for competent men to help build them. At the same time +fifty young nobles were dispatched to Venice to learn shipbuilding.</p> + +<p>When he was seventeen years old, Peter had married Eudoxia Lapoukine, +whose relatives abhorred all that was new; Peter's wife shared their +sentiments, so that his home life was far from happy. He had a son by +her, named Alexis; after the fall of Azof, Peter secured a divorce, an +act unheard of in Russia, where she remained czarina in the eyes of +the people. Busy as he was, Peter left his son and heir in charge of +his divorced wife, while he was making preparations for the long +expected visit to the west of Europe.</p> + +<p>He determined that an embassy should be sent, and that it should be +worthy of Russia. Accordingly he appointed the Swiss Lafort and two +Russian generals "the great Ambassadors of the Czar." Among their +retinue composed of two hundred and seventy persons, was a young man +Peter Mikhaïlof, better known as Peter Alexievitch. When the embassy +came to Riga, that young man was insulted by the governor. Peter said +nothing, but made a note of it for future use. At Königsberg, "Mr. +Peter Mikhaïlof" was appointed master of artillery by the Prussian +Colonel Sternfeld. The progress of the embassy was too slow for Peter +who had an object in view. He went ahead to Holland where he hired a +room from a blacksmith at Zaandam, bought <span class="pagenum"><a id="page155" name="page155"></a>(p. 155)</span> a workman's suit, +and went to work in a dockyard. He often visited Amsterdam where his +good nature and passion to learn gained him the good-will of the +people. Peter then crossed over to London where he spent three months. +Competent men of every profession and trade were engaged by him +everywhere. Returning to Holland, his ship was caught in a violent +gale, which frightened even the sailors. Peter kept cool, and, +smiling, asked them if they "had ever heard of a Czar of Russia who +was drowned in the North Sea?"</p> + +<p>Peter did not forget Russia's political interests. He talked with +William of Orange, the great opponent of Louis XIV, and with other +influential men, but he did not visit the court of France. After +satisfying his curiosity, he went to Vienna where he intended to study +strategy; but his stay was cut short by bad news from home.</p> + +<p>Peter had met with a sullen, obstinate opposition in Russia. It was +led by the priests who said, and perhaps believed, that Peter was the +anti-Christ. It was a cause for complaint that Peter often wore +clothes of a German fashion; was the Russian costume not good enough +for him? Again, why did he not devote his time to war, as the other +czars had done? He had made a bargain with British merchants to import +tobacco into Russia; what did the Russians want with this +"sacrilegious smell?" But the climax was that a <i>Czar of the Russias</i> +should leave Holy Russia to go among heretics and heathens. Geography +was not studied in the czar's empire, and all nations on earth were +thought to belong to either of the two classes.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page156" name="page156"></a>(p. 156)</span> trouble began among the streltsi who had been sent to +Azof. These citizen soldiers looked upon their destination at the +other end of the empire as an exile,—which it may have been. Two +hundred deserted and made their way back to Moscow and their families; +they were promptly hunted down. When they returned to their regiments, +they brought with them a secret proclamation from Sophia. "You +suffer," she declared, "but it will grow worse still. March on Moscow! +What are you waiting for? There is no news of the czar!" There was a +rumor that Peter was dead and that his son Alexis had been murdered by +the boyards. Four regiments revolted and left the ranks. Generals +Gordon and Schein went after them with the regular troops, and after +overtaking the mutineers, tried to bring them to reason. In reply they +stated their grievances and persisted in their determination not to +return to duty. The government troops then fired and scattered the +streltsi. A number of them were arrested, tortured, and executed.</p> + +<p>At this time Peter returned, furious at what had happened. He was +determined to strike at the head of the opposition, the Russians who +openly denounced innovations. He ordered that the face must be shaved. +This was hitting every adult Russian in a tender spot, because the +shaving of the face was considered in the light of a blasphemy. He +began to enforce his orders at his court, sometimes acting as a barber +himself, when he was none too gentle. A number of gibbets erected on +the Red Square, reminded the bearded noble that the choice lay between +losing the beard or the head. The Patriarch <span class="pagenum"><a id="page157" name="page157"></a>(p. 157)</span> appealed to +Peter, a holy eikon of the Virgin in his hand. "Why did you bring out +the holy eikon?" asked the czar. "Withdraw and restore it to its +place. Know that I venerate God and His mother as much as you do, but +know also that it is my duty to protect the people and to punish the +rebels."</p> + +<p>The gibbets did not stand as an idle threat. The Austrian Minister +Korb was a witness of the executions, which he describes thus: "Five +rebel heads had been sent into the dust by blows from an ax wielded by +the noblest hand in Russia." Thus Peter did not hesitate to be his own +executioner. It was like him to do his own work, regardless of what +the people might think. A thousand men were sent to a gory grave, by +the highest officers of the court; the executions lasted a week. The +funeral of the executed was forbidden. Bodies were seen dangling from +the walls of the kremlin for five months, and for the same length of +time, the corpses of some of the streltsi hung from the bars of +Sophia's prison, clutching the secret proclamation. Peter's divorced +wife had joined Sophia's party; the two ladies had their head shaved +and were confined in convents. The streltsi were dissolved and +replaced by regular troops.</p> + +<p>Peter then turned upon the Cossacks of the Don, who had shown greater +independence than pleased him. Prince Dolgorouki to whom the task was +confided of bringing them to order, wrote to the czar after he had +destroyed the Cossack camp: "The chief rebels and traitors have been +hung; of the others, one out of every ten; and all these dead +malefactors have been laid on rafts, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page158" name="page158"></a>(p. 158)</span> and turned into the +river, to strike terror into the hearts of the Don people and to cause +them to repent."</p> + +<p>Mazeppa, as we have seen, was at this time hetman of the Cossacks of +Little Russia. In his youth he had been a page of John Casimir, king +of Poland; it was then that he had that terrible adventure which is +connected indelibly with his name. After he was cut loose from the +back of the unbroken horse that had carried him in the steppes, he +entered among the Cossacks, and rose from the ranks by betraying every +chief who helped him. Although it was Sophia who made him hetman, he +was among the first to declare for Peter. His enemies, of whom he had +many, accused him before the czar, but Peter admired him, and +delivered his accusers up to him; they did not live long after Mazeppa +had them in his power.</p> + +<p>It was Mazeppa's scheme to establish an independent kingdom, he had +the support of the Cossacks who did not care to work but preferred to +be supported by the people. The industrious classes longed to get rid +of this burden, and looked toward the czar to set them free. The +tribute which Little Russia paid to Moscow was quite heavy, and when +it was rumored that Peter was going to war with Sweden, Mazeppa +thought this was an opportunity to carry out his scheme. He entered +into negotiations with Stanislas Lecszinski whom Swedish influence had +placed upon the throne of Poland. Peter was informed of this in +detail, but he did not credit it, beheaded one of his informants, and +the others, were tortured and sent to Siberia.</p> + +<p>The war broke out, Charles XII, the romantic king of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page159" name="page159"></a>(p. 159)</span> Sweden +arrived in the neighborhood of Little Russia, and Peter called on +Mazeppa to join the Russian army with his Cossacks. He pretended to be +dying, but when the two hostile armies were drawing close, he crossed +the Desna with his most trusted Cossacks to join the Swedes. Peter's +eyes were opened; he gave orders to his general Menzikoff to take and +sack Mazeppa's capital. This was done and Mazeppa's friends, who had +remained behind, were executed. Mazeppa himself reached the Swedish +camp. He was compelled to seek safety in Turkey, where he died +miserably at Bender. His territory was annexed to Russia, the Cossacks +lost all their privileges, and 1,200 of them were set to work on the +Ladoga canal.</p> + +<p>It was in 1700 that Peter, after concluding an alliance with Poland, +determined to declare war against Sweden where young Charles XII had +recently succeeded to the throne. Attacked at the same time by Russia, +Poland, and Denmark, this young hero invaded the last-named country +and compelled its king to conclude peace. After relieving Riga, +Charles marched into Russia at the head of 8,500 men, and on the 30th +of November defeated a Russian army of 63,000 men. This victory proved +a misfortune, because it inspired the King of Sweden with contempt for +Russian soldiers and made him careless, whereas Peter worked +cheerfully and hard to profit from the lesson. While Charles was +absent in Poland, his army was twice defeated.</p> + +<p>Each of the two antagonists was worthy of the other's steel. Both were +brave, but Charles was impetuous, whereas Peter acted upon cool +judgment. The war continued <span class="pagenum"><a id="page160" name="page160"></a>(p. 160)</span> until 1709 when Charles found +himself in Little Russia, far away from supplies and reinforcements, +in a Russian winter which happened to be exceptionally severe. In the +spring he laid siege to Pultowa. The czar arrived on the 15th of June +with 60,000 men; Charles had 29,000. On July 8, 1709, the battle of +Pultowa was fought and Charles was defeated; he narrowly escaped being +captured. With Mazeppa and the Pole Poniatowski, he made his way +across the Turkish frontier, and remained until 1713, in the territory +of the Sultan, whom he finally induced to declare war against Peter. +This victory gave Peter the longed-for port on the Baltic, since +Sweden was no longer in a condition to stop him.</p> + +<p>What induced Sultan Ahmed III to risk war with Russia, was the hope of +regaining Azof. Peter, on the other hand, hoped for an opportunity to +capture Constantinople, the Czargrad of former times. He knew that he +had the sympathy of the many Christians of the Greek Church, who were +suffering under the yoke of the Turk. Trusting upon their support, +Peter arrived on the bank of the Pruth with 38,000 exhausted soldiers. +There he found himself surrounded by 200,000 Turks and Tartars. Peter +gained a slight success, but not of sufficient importance to extricate +or relieve him. Fearing an overwhelming calamity, Peter was prepared +to make immense sacrifices in return for peace, and even to surrender +Azof and the territory taken from Sweden, when his second wife +Catherine had a happy thought. She collected all the money and jewels +in the Russian camp, and sent them as a present to the Grand Vizier in +command <span class="pagenum"><a id="page161" name="page161"></a>(p. 161)</span> of the enemy, asking at the same time, what terms he +would make. They were found unexpectedly reasonable: the surrender of +Azof, the razing of the Russian forts erected on Turkish territory, +and that Charles XII should be free to return to Sweden. Peter +accepted eagerly, much as he regretted the loss of Azof and the +failure of his schemes.</p> + +<p>In 1713, a Russian fleet under Admiral Apraxine, with Peter serving +under him as vice-admiral, captured several cities on the Baltic, and +a Russian force entered north Germany. An alliance was formed against +him and Peter decided to make an attempt at an alliance with France. +In 1718, just as peace was being concluded with Charles XII, the King +of Sweden, died and war broke out anew, lasting until 1721, when, by +the Peace of Nystad, Sweden surrendered to Russia Livonia, Esthonia, +and part of Finland. Peter had his way: Russia had open ports.</p> + +<p>Peter was greatly pleased, and Russia rejoiced with him. The senate +and Holy Synod conferred upon him the titles of "the Great, the Father +of his country, and Emperor of all the Russias." In 1722, Peter led an +expedition to the Caspian Sea. He captured Baku and five other +important towns. He died three years later, in 1725.</p> + + + + +<h2>XIX—PETER THE GREAT AND HIS TIME. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page162" name="page162"></a>(p. 162)</span></h2> + + +<p>Before judging Peter the Great, the time in which he lived, and the +conditions which prevailed should receive careful consideration. +Throughout Western Europe, in France, Germany, Spain, and Italy, in +parliamentary England and republican Holland, the people, that is the +masses, toiled early and late for the privilege of paying the taxes; +all immunities were reserved for the favored few composing the +aristocracy.</p> + +<p>There was no education among the people, with the exception perhaps of +Holland, then still a power of the first rank. The principle was that +the interests of the individual were unworthy of consideration by the +side of those of the State. That was the case in France as well as in +Russia. Peter inherited the idea of autocratic power, and his travels +in Europe conveyed to him nothing to upset or contradict that idea. He +cannot, therefore, be considered in the light of a tyrant. He acted, +so far as he could know, within his prerogative, and did his duty as +he saw it.</p> + +<p>Russia, with a thin and scattered population largely engaged in +agriculture, felt no impulse toward progress. The moujik lived as his +father had lived. He never came in contact with people of a superior +civilization who, by <span class="pagenum"><a id="page163" name="page163"></a>(p. 163)</span> introducing new wants, could make him +discontented with his lot. Knowing no desire but to satisfy his +physical craving, he bore the extremes of heat and cold with equal +fortitude; the soil and his labor provided for his subsistence. A life +so sordid must either brutalize man or feed his imagination with the +unknown and dreaded forces of nature; superstition, deep and strong, +became part of the peasant's existence. It is generations before a +traditional and deep-rooted belief can be eradicated.</p> + +<p>But Peter the Great gave as little thought to the moujik as did Louis +XIV to the peasants of France. His influence was exerted upon the +boyards, and among them the opposition was the stronger as they had +been imbued with Asiatic ideas under the Tartar yoke. Here the great +muscular strength of Peter rendered him great service. He did not +hesitate to use a stick upon the highest officials any more than Ivan +the Terrible had used his iron-tipped staff. Even Menzikoff was +chastized in this manner. Frederick the Great of Prussia did the same +afterwards. Nor was this method of punishing without its use. One day +when Peter was looking over the accounts of one of his nobles, he +proved to him that, whereas the boyard had been robbing the +government, he in turn had been robbed by his steward. The czar took +the noble by the collar and applied the stick with a muscular arm and +great vigor. After he had punished him to his heart's content, he let +him go, saying, "Now you had better go find your steward and settle +accounts with him."</p> + +<p>It was Peter's purpose to make the Russians again into <span class="pagenum"><a id="page164" name="page164"></a>(p. 164)</span> +Europeans. He rightly deemed it best to begin with externals, because +they are the object lessons of changes. The Russian boyard was +attached to the long caftan or tunic adopted from the Tartars, but +above all he was devoted to the hair on his face. The beard was doomed +by the czar. He could not play barber to all his subjects, but he +imposed a heavy tax upon unshaven faces. Owners of beards paid from +thirty to one hundred rubles, and moujiks had to pay two pence for +theirs every time they entered a city or town.</p> + +<p>The reform which had the most lasting influence upon Russia, was the +abolition of the landed nobility as a separate class. They would be +known as "<i>tchin</i>" or gentlemen, and any one who entered the service +of the government, regardless of birth, was at once entitled to be +classed among the <i>tchinovnik</i>. From that time the terms gentleman and +officer, became synonymous. Every service, civil, military, naval, or +ecclesiastic, was divided into fourteen grades. The lowest grade in +the civil service was held by the registrar of a college, the highest +by the Chancellor of the Empire; the cornet was at the bottom, the +field marshal at the top in the army; and the deacon in a church was +fourteen degrees removed from the Patriarch,—but all were <i>tchin</i>.</p> + +<p>When, in 1700, the Patriarch Adrian died, the dignity was abolished by +Peter who did not relish the idea of a rival power in the State. +Instead he created the Holy Synod together with the office of +Superintendent of the Patriarchal Throne. He gives his reasons in the +ukase wherein the change is announced. "The simple people," this +document reads, "are not quick to seize the distinction between +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page165" name="page165"></a>(p. 165)</span> the spiritual and imperial power; struck with the virtue and +the splendor of the supreme pastor of the Church, they imagine that he +is a second sovereign, equal and even superior in power to the +Autocrat."</p> + +<p>The Holy Synod consisted of bishops and a Procurator-general who +represented the czar and as such could veto any resolution. This +official was often a general. Every bishop had to keep a school in his +palace, and the sons of priests who refused to attend were taken as +soldiers. Autocrat though he was, Peter dared not confiscate the +property of the monasteries, but he forbade any person to enter a +convent before his thirtieth year. The monks were ordered to work at +some trade, or to teach in the schools and colleges. At this time, the +Protestant and Catholic churches of the West tried to make converts, +and the <i>raskols</i> were hostile to the national church. As a rule Peter +did not favor persecution; so long as the church did not interfere +with his authority, there was nothing to fear from him; but upon the +slightest suspicion his heavy hand was felt. Thus, in 1710, he +suddenly ordered the expulsion of the Jesuits. He used to say: "God +has given the czar power over the nations, but Christ alone has power +over the conscience of man." This did not prevent him from exacting a +double tax from the raskols in Moscow, nor from punishing cruelly any +Russian converted to one of the western churches.</p> + +<p>The great mass of the people suffered severely by Peter's reforms. The +peasants as tenants of the large landowners had enjoyed some liberty +and were legally free men; they were by him assigned to the soil, +which they were not permitted to leave. Thus they, too, passed into +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page166" name="page166"></a>(p. 166)</span> serfdom. If the proprietor sold the estate, the rural +population went with it. The owners paid a poll-tax for their serfs. +These unfortunates could also be sold without the land, but the czar +made a law that "If the sale cannot be abolished completely, serfs +must be sold by families without separating husbands from wives, +parents from children, and no longer like cattle, a thing unheard of +in the whole world."</p> + +<p>The citizens of towns were divided into three classes; to the first +class belonged bankers, manufacturers, rich merchants, physicians, +chemists, capitalists, jewelers, workers in metal, and artists; +storekeepers and master mechanics were in the second; all other people +belonged to the third. Foreigners could engage in business, acquire +real estate; but they could not depart from the country without paying +to the government one tenth of all they possessed.</p> + +<p>Cities and towns were administered by burgomasters elected by the +citizens; this board selected its own president or mayor. If an +important question arose, representatives of the first two classes +were summoned for consultation. All the mayors of Russia were subject +to a magistrate selected from the Council of St. Petersburg, and +appointed by the czar. This official watched over the interests of +commerce and agriculture, settled disputes between citizens and +burgomasters, confirmed local elections, authorized executions when a +death sentence was pronounced by provincial authorities, and made +reports to the tsar.</p> + +<p>The <i>voïevodes</i> or governors of a province directed all the affairs of +their jurisdiction and disbursed the revenues <span class="pagenum"><a id="page167" name="page167"></a>(p. 167)</span> as they +thought best. "Help yourself first!" was the unwritten law, and it was +universally obeyed. Peter divided his empire into forty-three +provinces, forming twelve governments each under a viceroy and deputy, +who were assisted by a council elected by the nobles.</p> + +<p>The courts were crude and mediæval, but not more so than in the west +of Europe. Justice, such as it was, was administered by the General +Police Inspector, and in large cities there was a police officer for +every ten houses. Servants who failed to keep the house front clean +were punished with the knout. Peter created the Bureau of Information, +a court of secret police, and thus inaugurated the terrible spy system +which still disgraces Russia.</p> + +<p>The douma was abolished, and in its stead Peter created a "Directory +Senate," which could meet only in presence of the czar. It was +originally composed of nine members, but it was afterwards increased +and at last embraced the duties of the Grand Council, the High Finance +Committee, and the Supreme Court. A fair idea of the moral and mental +condition of Russia's high aristocracy, may be had from a rule made by +Peter, forbidding the Senators under severe penalties, while in +session "to cry out, to beat each other, or to call one another +thieves."</p> + +<p>Peter's visits to the west, taught him the value of factories. He gave +every possible inducement to foreign capital and skill to come to +Russia, and patronized home industry wherever he could, as by +purchasing the uniforms for army and navy from recently established +mills. Some of his methods appear strange, as, for instance, when he +ordered every town in Russia to send a stipulated number of shoemakers +to Moscow, to learn their <span class="pagenum"><a id="page168" name="page168"></a>(p. 168)</span> trade. Those who continued to work +in the old fashion, were severely punished. The czar would have met +with greater success, if he had not been hampered by the cupidity of +the officials, who found means to secure the lion's share of the +profits.</p> + +<p>Peter discarded the old Slavonic alphabet and introduced the one used +at present. St. Petersburg had four printing presses, Moscow two, and +there were also some at Novgorod, Tchernigof, and other large places. +The first newspaper in Russia, the <i>St. Petersburg Gazette</i>, was +founded by him. He established, in 1724, the Academy of Sciences, in +imitation of the institution of that name of Paris.</p> + +<p>St. Petersburg was founded in 1703. It was far from a promising site +for a new capital, the dreary wastes, dark forests, and marshes where +wild ducks and geese found a favorite feeding place. It was exposed to +frequent floods, and piles were needed before a building could be +erected. But when this autocrat had made up his mind, objections were +brushed aside. Peter collected 40,000 men, soldiers, Cossacks, +Kalmucks, Tartars and such natives as could be found, and put them to +work. At first he provided neither tools nor shelter, and food was +often scarce. Thousands of workmen died;—what did he care? Others +were compelled to take their place. The fortress of St. Peter and Paul +arose first; the czar himself was watching the progress from a little +wooden house on the right bank of the Neva. Men of means were forced +to build stone houses in the new capital. Swedish prisoners and +merchants from Novgorod were invited to move to St. Petersburg, and no +excuse was admitted. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page169" name="page169"></a>(p. 169)</span> Goods could be brought only by boat, +and no boat was allowed to land unless it carried a certain number of +white stones to be used as building material. He erected churches, and +ordered that he should be buried in the Church of St. Peter and Paul.</p> + +<p>Peter's domestic life, as we have seen, was not happy. After his +divorce from his first wife, he married Catherine who, in 1702, had +been made prisoner at Marienburg. It is not known where she was born, +but she was probably a native of Livonia, and was a servant in the +family of Pastor Glück and engaged to be married to a Swedish dragoon. +She became the property of Menzikoff who gave her to the czar. There +was a secret marriage which was confirmed by a public ceremony in +1712, in reward for her services at Pultowa. Peter also instituted the +Order "For Love and Fidelity," in her honor. A German princess +describes her thus:—"The czarina was small and clumsily made, very +much tanned, and without grace or air of distinction. You had only to +see her to know that she was lowborn. From her usual costume you would +have taken her for a German comedian. Her dress had been bought at a +secondhand shop; it was very old-fashioned, and covered with silver +and dirt. She had a dozen orders, and as many portraits of saints or +relics, fastened all down her dress, in such a way that when she +walked you would have thought by the jingling that a mule was +passing." She could neither read nor write, but she was sharp, had +natural wit, and obtained great influence over Peter. They had two +sons, Peter and Paul, who died in childhood, and two daughters, Anne +and Elizabeth. The former married the Duke of Holstein.</p> + +<p>Alexis, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page170" name="page170"></a>(p. 170)</span> the son by his first wife, was Peter's heir. He had +grown to be a young man before Peter realized that the result of all +his efforts depended upon his successor, and the czar began to pay +attention to his son's education when it was too late, when habits had +been formed. The czarévitch had imbibed the prejudices of his mother; +he was narrow-minded, lazy, weak, and obstinate, and associated with +people to whom Old Russia was Holy Russia, who abhorred reforms of +every kind. Peter sent him to travel in Germany, but the prince would +learn nothing. His father warned him in very plain terms. "Disquiet +for the future," he wrote to Alexis, "destroys the joy caused by my +present successes. I see that you despise everything that can make you +worthy to reign after me. What you call inability, I call rebellion, +for you cannot excuse yourself on the ground of the weakness of your +mind and the state of your health. We have struggled from obscurity +through the toil of war, which has taught other nations to know and +respect us, and yet you will not even hear of military exercises. If +you do not alter your conduct, know that I shall deprive you of my +succession. I have not spared, and I shall not spare, my own life for +my country; do you think that I shall spare yours? I would rather have +a stranger who is worthy for my heir, than a good-for-nothing member +of my own family."</p> + +<p>Alexis should have known that his father was in terrible earnest, yet +he did not heed the warning. When Peter was traveling in Western +Europe, his son fled to Vienna, where he thought that he should be +safe. Finding that this was not so, he went to the Tyrol and +afterwards to Naples, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page171" name="page171"></a>(p. 171)</span> but his father's agents traced him and +one of them, Tolstoï, secured an interview in which he assured the +prince of his father's pardon, and finally persuaded him to return to +Moscow. As soon as he arrived there, he was arrested. The czar +convoked the three Estates before whom he accused the czarévitch. +Alexis was forced to sign his resignation of the Crown. When he was +being examined, probably under torture, a widespread conspiracy was +revealed. Peter learned also that his son had begged the Emperor of +Austria for armed intervention, that he had negotiated with Sweden and +that he had encouraged a mutiny of the army in Germany. It was shown +that his divorced wife and several prelates were in the plot. Peter +crushed his enemies. Most of the persons involved suffered a cruel +death, and Alexis himself, after being punished with the knout, was +sentenced to die. Two days later his death was announced. It appears +that on that day, the heir to the throne was brought before a court +composed of nine men of the highest rank in Russia and that he was +beaten with a knout to secure further confessions, and that he expired +under the torture. Those present were sworn to secrecy, and kept the +oath.</p> + +<p>Peter, therefore, had no male heir. Alexis, however, had left a son +Peter by Charlotte of Brunswick whom he married against his will. In +1723 the czar ordered Catherine to be crowned as Empress. He had +established the right to select his successor but failed to do so, +owing to his sudden death.</p> + +<p>The following description of Peter the Great at the age of forty, is +given by a Frenchman; "He was a very tall <span class="pagenum"><a id="page172" name="page172"></a>(p. 172)</span> man, well made +though rather thin, his face somewhat round, with a broad forehead, +beautiful eyebrows, a short nose, thick at the end; his lips were +rather thick, his skin was brown and ruddy. He had splendid eyes, +large, black, piercing, and well-opened; his expression was dignified +and gracious when he liked, but often wild and stern, and his eyes, +and indeed his whole face, were distorted by an occasional twitch that +was very unpleasant. It lasted only a moment, and gave him a wandering +and terrible look, when he was himself again. His air expressed +intellect, thoughtfulness, and greatness, and had a certain grace +about it. He wore a linen collar, a round wig, brown and unpowdered, +which did not reach his shoulders; a brown, tight-fitting coat with +gold buttons, a vest, trousers, and stockings, and neither gloves nor +cuffs; the star of his order on his coat, and the ribbon underneath +it; his coat was often unbuttoned, his hat lay on the table, and was +never on his head, even out of doors. In this simplicity, however +shabby might be his carriage or scanty his suit, his natural greatness +could not be mistaken."</p> + + + + +<h2>XX—THE SUCCESSORS OF PETER THE GREAT. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page173" name="page173"></a>(p. 173)</span></h2> + + +<p>Peter's strong hand had stifled the opposition to his reforms, but +with his death it reappeared. There were, therefore, two parties in +Russia: the men who had assisted the dead czar, Menzikoff, Apraxine, +Tolstoï, and others, such as the members of the secret Court who had +witnessed the violent death of Peter's only son. They dreaded the +succession of Peter's grandson, the boy who, although only twelve +years old, might order an investigation of his father's death. These +men held the power and decided that, since Catherine had been crowned +as Empress, it was she who should succeed. Thus the former maid +servant, not even a native Russian, became Empress of all the Russias. +There were some protests in favor of Peter's grandson, but they were +disregarded.</p> + +<p>Menzikoff who was the cause of Catherine's rise, fancied himself +all-powerful, and there was jealousy among Peter's associates. +Menzikoff sent one of them, Tolstoï, to Siberia, but Catherine would +not consent to the punishment of the other friends of the late czar. +She was honest in carrying out Peter's unfinished projects. He had +planned the marriage of his daughter Anne to the Duke of Holstein: the +wedding took place; he intended to send an exploring expedition to +Kamtschatka; she engaged <span class="pagenum"><a id="page174" name="page174"></a>(p. 174)</span> the services of a Danish captain, +Bering, who discovered the sea and strait named after him. The Academy +of Sciences was opened in 1726. She, however, changed the Senate into +a Secret High Council, which met under the presidency of the empress.</p> + +<p>Catherine died in 1727, and on her deathbed appointed Peter's +grandson, then fourteen years old, as her successor. In case of his +death, the throne would go to Anne, and next to Elizabeth. During his +minority these two daughters assisted by the Duke of Holstein, +Menzikoff, and some other high officers, would constitute a Board of +Regents.</p> + +<p>Menzikoff had taken precautions. He had obtained her consent that the +young heir, Peter II, should marry one of his daughters, a young lady +two years older than the boy. He showed, in his letters to Peter, that +he looked upon him as his son. He also intended his own son to marry +the boy's sister Natalia. There was one member of Peter the Great's +family who did not approve of Menzikoff's schemes, Elizabeth, the +young czar's aunt, then seventeen years old. Not long after +Catherine's death, Menzikoff fell ill; he was compelled to keep to his +rooms, and in that time Elizabeth roused her nephew's suspicions. +Peter left Menzikoff's palace and when Catherine's favorite tried to +resume his authority, he was arrested and exiled to his estates. Soon +after he was sent to Siberia, where he died two years later, in 1729.</p> + +<p>The Dolgorouki family succeeded, but its head committed the same +mistakes, besides showing a tendency to undo the work of Peter the +Great. The young czar was growing <span class="pagenum"><a id="page175" name="page175"></a>(p. 175)</span> weary of the Dolgorouki +when, in January 1730, he caught cold and died after a brief illness.</p> + +<p>It was during his short reign that Prussia, Austria, and Russia, first +seriously discussed the partition of Poland. A treaty was signed +between Prussia and Russia whereby the two powers agreed to select and +support a candidate for the throne of that kingdom which was to +illustrate the truth that "a kingdom divided against itself cannot +exist."</p> + +<p>Peter's death left Russia without a male heir. There were, as we have +seen, two daughters from his marriage with Catherine. Anne, who had +married the Duke of Holstein, had died in 1728, leaving a son also +named Peter. Elizabeth, the other daughter, was in St. Petersburg, +quietly engaged in establishing a party of her own. There were, +besides, two other parties having claims upon the throne. Ivan, the +weak-minded half-brother of Peter the Great, had been married and had +left two daughters, Anne, Duchess of Courland, and Catherine, Duchess +of Mecklenburg.</p> + +<p>The decision rested with the Secret High Council. Dolgorouki's claim, +that Peter II had made a secret will leaving the throne to his bride, +was laughed to scorn. The members of the High Council saw an +opportunity to secure most of the autocratic power for themselves, and +resolved to offer the throne to Anne of Courland, provided that she +subscribed to the following conditions: That the Secret High Council +should always consist of eight members, all vacancies to be filled by +themselves; that she could make neither war nor peace, nor appoint an +officer above the rank of colonel, without the consent of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page176" name="page176"></a>(p. 176)</span> +the Council; that she could not condemn a noble to death, nor +confiscate his property, without a trial; and that she could neither +appoint a successor, nor marry again without the approval of the +Council. She was also to sign an agreement whereby she would forfeit +the crown "in case of my ceasing to observe these engagements." The +Council also decided upon moving the capital back to Moscow.</p> + +<p>This might have been the beginning of a more liberal government for +Russia, since it diminished the power of the czar and the people would +have benefited by the increased rights of the nobles, as was the case +in England. It was the nobility who objected, from fear that the power +might be absorbed in the families of the Council members. Anne of +Courland accepted the conditions and came to Moscow. There she +received letters from the enemies of the Council imploring her to +disregard her promises. On the 25th of February, 1731, the Council was +in session when an officer appeared summoning them before the czarina. +Upon arrival in the apartment, they found about eight hundred persons +presenting a petition that Anne might restore autocracy. She read it +and seemed astonished: "What!" she exclaimed, "the conditions sent to +me at Mittau were not the will of the people?" There was a shout of +"No! no!" "Then," she said, addressing the Council, "you have deceived +me!" Anne was a true daughter of the czars. She began by exiling the +principal members of the Council to their estates; when she saw that +there was no opposition, they were sent to Siberia; and when no one +remonstrated, other members were condemned to a cruel death.</p> + +<p>Anne <span class="pagenum"><a id="page177" name="page177"></a>(p. 177)</span> was thirty-five years old when she was crowned as +czarina. She had been in Germany so long that she preferred to +surround herself with Germans who did serve her well, but they +naturally aroused the jealousy and hatred of the Russian nobles. In +1733, Augustus II, King of Poland, died. Russia, Prussia, and France, +each had a candidate. Austria and Russia favored Augustus III of +Saxony, and Louis XV of France supported his father-in-law Stanislas +Lecszinski.</p> + +<p>This candidate secretly proceeded to Warsaw, where he was elected by a +vote of 60,000 against 4,000. A Russian army crossed the frontier, +whereupon Stanislas withdrew to Dantzig and the Russians proclaimed +Augustus III. The war spread and a Russian army of 20,000 men advanced +as far as Heidelberg in Baden. It ended in 1735, by the Peace of +Vienna, but Russia became involved in a war with Turkey, as an ally of +Austria.</p> + +<p>In 1736, the Russians took Azof and ravaged the western Crimea. In the +following year they laid waste its eastern part, and in 1739 they +gained a great victory at Savoutchani. Austria was not anxious to have +Russia as a close neighbor, and arranged the Peace of Belgrade. +(1739.) Russia surrendered all the conquests, except a small tongue of +land between the Dnieper and the Bug. Sweden threatened war, but it +was averted. The following year, 1740, Anne died, leaving the throne +to her infant son, Ivan of Brunswick.</p> + +<p>Anne Ivanovna introduced western luxury into Russia. Prior to her +arrival, fashions were unknown, and people used to wear their clothes +until they were worn out. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page178" name="page178"></a>(p. 178)</span> Soon after restoring autocracy, +she returned to St. Petersburg where she endeavored to establish a +court in imitation of that of France. She could compel her nobles to +appear in the costume of the west, and, unless they were very wealthy, +make them sacrifice estates and serfs to pay his increased expenses, +but of the refinement which creates fashion, there was none. One of +her guests, a procurator-general was so intoxicated at one of her +receptions that he insulted one of Anne's most trusted advisers; she +was a witness, but only laughed heartily.</p> + +<p>The young nobles benefited by the German influence at Court, since +they received a better education. A law was made requiring them to +study from their seventh to their twentieth year, and to serve the +government from that age until they were forty-five. Between the age +of twelve and sixteen they were made to appear before an examining +board, and any one failing to pass the second time in catechism, +arithmetic, and geometry, was put into the navy. In the schools for +young nobles,—the serfs received no instruction of any kind,—the +course of studies was enlarged after the German system.</p> + +<p>Anne's infant son, Ivan, was three months old, when he succeeded to +the throne as Ivan VI. Elizabeth, the daughter of Peter the Great and +Catherine, was twenty-eight years old; tall and masculine, bright and +bold, daring on horseback as well as on the water, she had made a host +of friends among the high officials and the Guards. She found an able +adviser in the French Minister at St. Petersburg who was anxious to +destroy the influence of Germany. The Swedes went so far as to begin a +war, proclaiming <span class="pagenum"><a id="page179" name="page179"></a>(p. 179)</span> the desire to deliver "the glorious Russian +nation" from the German yoke. Elizabeth decided that the time had come +to act, when the regiments devoted to her were ordered to the +frontier. In the night of October 25, 1741, she went with three +friends to the barracks. "Boys," she said to the men, "you know whose +daughter I am?" "Matuska," (little mother), they replied, "we are +ready; we will kill all of them." She said that she did not wish any +blood to be shed, and added: "I swear to die for you; will <i>you</i> swear +to die for me?" They made the oath. When she returned to the palace, +the regent, the infant czar, and the German members of the Government +were arrested. Ivan VI was sent to a fortress near the Swedish +frontier. The Germans were brought before a court and condemned to +death, but Elizabeth commuted the sentence to exile. After this she +went to Moscow, where she was crowned as czarina. Her next act was to +send for her nephew, Peter, the son of her sister Anne of Holstein. He +came and entered the Greek Church, when he was proclaimed as heir to +the throne as Peter Feodorovitch.</p> + +<p>Sweden demanded the cession of the territory conquered by Peter the +Great, and, since Elizabeth refused, the war continued. But Sweden was +no longer the kingdom of Charles XII; the Russians were everywhere +victorious, and by the Peace of Abo, in 1743, Sweden ceded South +Finland and agreed to elect Elizabeth's ally, Adolphus of Holstein, as +heir to the throne.</p> + +<p>In 1740 the Emperor of Germany died, after obtaining from the powers +the consent to set aside the Salic Law of succession, in favor of his +daughter. This law restricted the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page180" name="page180"></a>(p. 180)</span> right of succession to +male heirs exclusively. In violation of the pledged word, several +claimants appeared to contest the claim of his daughter Maria Theresa, +and since almost every nation took sides, it was important to know +what Russia would do. Elizabeth was undecided; at least, she played +with both sides until 1746, when she entered into an alliance with +Maria Theresa, while England promised subsidies in money. It was, +however, 1748 before a Russian army of 30,000 men passed through +Germany and took up a position on the Rhine. In the same year the war +was ended by the Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle, without the Russians having +been under fire.</p> + +<p>Elizabeth hated Frederick the Great of Prussia. She claimed that "The +King of Prussia is certainly a bad prince who has no fear of God +before his eyes; he turns holy things into ridicule, and he never goes +to church." The real reason was that Frederick had expressed his +opinion about Elizabeth's private life, and she was not the woman to +forgive his remarks. Then again, Frederick had an excellent army of +200,000 men; Elizabeth's chancellor, on that account, called Prussia +"the most dangerous of neighbors, whose power it was necessary to +break."</p> + +<p>Russia, Austria, France, and Saxony, entered into a secret alliance +against Prussia. Frederick found it out, and in 1756, began the famous +Seven Years' War. The same year, 83,000 Russians under Apraxine +crossed the frontier and seized East Prussia. A battle was fought; the +Russians were the victors, but Apraxine fell back across the Niemen. +France and Austria suspected treachery; Apraxine was arrested and the +chancellor was <span class="pagenum"><a id="page181" name="page181"></a>(p. 181)</span> dismissed and exiled. Fermor was appointed +commander-in-chief.</p> + +<p>The Russian army recrossed the frontier in 1758, took Königsberg and +bombarded Küstrin on the Oder. Frederick with 32,000 men attacked the +Russian army 89,000 strong at Zorndorf. The Russians fought stubbornly +but were defeated with a loss of 20,000 men. Fermor was recalled, and +succeeded by Soltykof who, in 1759, entered Frankfort on the Oder. +Another battle was fought and Frederick was defeated by greatly +superior numbers. He lost 8,000 men. Prussia was exhausted, but his +enemies, too, began to feel the expense of the war. Elizabeth, +however, was determined to humble the outspoken King when she died +suddenly in 1761. She was succeeded by her nephew Peter Feodorovitch +under the name of Peter III.</p> + +<p>Elizabeth, although careless in her mode of living, was a stout +supporter of the Greek Church. In 1742, she agreed with the Holy Synod +to suppress all other churches, as well as the Mosques or Mahomedan +temples in the south. This caused a revolt of the Mahomedans. The Jews +were also expelled in some parts of the empire. A fever of fanaticism +broke out; fifty-three <i>raskolnik</i> in Russia, and one hundred and +seventy-two in Siberia, burned themselves to death.</p> + +<p>Count Ivan Schouvalof, one of Elizabeth's friends, believed in +education and was given a free hand. He ordered that the priests and +their children should attend school, on penalty of being whipped. He +founded the University of Moscow, which has educated many learned +Russians. To induce students to enter, he induced Elizabeth to +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page182" name="page182"></a>(p. 182)</span> make a law that all students should be tchins of the tenth +grade, and the professors hold the eighth grade. He sent young men +abroad to study and established higher schools in every Government. +Schouvalof was also the founder of the Academy of Fine Arts at St. +Petersburg.</p> + +<p>That capital was growing; its population was 74,000 under Elizabeth. +She built the Winter Palace and saw the plans for Tsarskoé Selo, the +magnificent retreat of the Russian emperors. She reëstablished the +Senate, as organized by Peter the Great.</p> + + + + +<h2>XXI—RUSSIA UNDER CATHERINE II (THE GREAT). <span class="pagenum"><a id="page183" name="page183"></a>(p. 183)</span></h2> + + +<p>Peter III was thirty-four years old when he succeeded to the throne. +Although it was twenty years since his aunt Elizabeth sent for him +from Holstein, he was more of a German than a Russian, and had an +intense admiration for Frederick the Great. He at once reversed +Russia's policy, ordered the commander-in-chief of the Russian armies +to leave his Austrian allies, and made peace with the King of Prussia +to whom he restored all Russia's conquests. Then he entered into an +alliance with Frederick, which was the means of saving Prussia.</p> + +<p>Peter relieved the nobles of the duty of serving the state, for which +they were so grateful that they proposed to erect his statue in gold; +he heard of it, and forbade their doing so. He abolished the Secret +Court of Police, and showed great kindness to the raskols and +permitted many of them to return from Siberia. A host of other exiles +were recalled, and he thought of relieving the hard lot of the +moujiks.</p> + +<p>For all this, he was unpopular and disliked. His disregard for old +Russian customs and his mode of life gave deep offense. He was married +to Sophia of Anhalt, who had <span class="pagenum"><a id="page184" name="page184"></a>(p. 184)</span> assumed the name of Catherine; +she was a woman of decided ability and strong character. Peter wanted +a divorce. She heard of it and contrived a conspiracy among the high +nobles and officers of the army and navy. Peter had no thought of +danger, when he ordered the arrest of Passek, a young officer and +favorite of Catherine. Thinking that the conspiracy had been +discovered, she left her palace in the outskirts and came to St. +Petersburg where the three regiments of Foot Guards declared in her +favor, and Peter's uncle was arrested by his own regiment of Horse +Guards. When Catherine entered the Winter Palace, she was sure of the +army and navy; Cronstadt was seized by her supporters, and she issued +a proclamation assuming the government. At the head of 20,000 men, she +marched upon the Palace, where the czar, her husband, was residing.</p> + +<p>Peter fled to Cronstadt and sought the Admiral. "I am the czar," he +said. "There is no longer a czar," was the reply, and all Peter could +do was to return to his palace, where he abdicated "like a child being +sent to sleep," as Frederick the Great expressed it. He then called on +his wife, "after which," Catherine tells us, "I sent the deposed +emperor, under the command of Alexis Orlof accompanied by four +officers and a detachment of gentle and reasonable men, to a place +called Ropcha, fifteen miles from Peterhof, a secluded spot, but very +pleasant." Four days later Peter III was dead. Catherine declared that +he died of colic "with the blood flying to the brains."</p> + +<a id="img013" name="img013"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img013.jpg" width="400" height="572" alt="Catharine II" title="Catharine II"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Catharine II</p> + +<p>But one was living with just and strong claims to the throne. Ivan VI, +the infant czar sent to prison by Elizabeth in <span class="pagenum"><a id="page186" name="page186"></a>(p. 186)</span> 1741, was +now twenty-one years old. It was reported that he had lost his reason, +which may have been true or false. Catherine disposed of him. She +said: "It is my opinion that he should not be allowed to escape, so as +to place him beyond the power of doing harm. It would be best to +tonsure him (that is, to make a monk of him), and to transfer him to +some monastery, neither too near nor too far off; it will suffice if +it does not become a shrine." She did not desire that the people +should make a martyr of a descendant of Peter the Great, while she, a +foreign woman, was occupying the throne. Poor Ivan was murdered by his +keepers two years later, when a lieutenant of the Guards was trying to +effect his escape. After that, Catherine had no rival for the crown, +except her son Paul, whom she disliked.</p> + +<p>At first it seemed as if Catherine would reverse her husband's policy +with regard to Prussia. She gave orders to the army to leave the +Prussian camp, but she did not command active hostilities; since the +parties felt the exhaustion of a seven years' struggle, peace +negotiations were begun and concluded successfully.</p> + +<p>Catherine made Russia a party to the System of the North; that is, she +entered into an alliance with England, Prussia, and Denmark, as +against France and Austria. Nearly all Europe was deeply interested in +the severe illness of the King of Poland, because of the election +which must follow his death. Unhappy Poland was bringing destruction +upon itself. A lawless nobility kept the country in anarchy, and +religious persecution, which had disappeared elsewhere, was still +rampant. It was the gold distributed by interested powers, that +controlled the vote <span class="pagenum"><a id="page187" name="page187"></a>(p. 187)</span> of the Diet, and since it was merely a +question of the highest bidder, Frederick the Great and Catherine came +to an understanding. They decided to elect Stanislas Poniatowski, a +Polish noble. France and Austria supported the Prince of Saxony, who +was also the choice of the Court party. After the death of Augustus +III, the Diet assembled and elected the French and Austrian candidate. +Members of the Diet asked for Russian intervention and, supported by +Catherine's army, Poniatowski was placed on the throne.</p> + +<p>Russia and Prussia were not satisfied; they wanted part of the kingdom +and the prevailing anarchy on their frontiers justified them. But +Catherine made a pretext out of Poland's religious +intolerance,—although the same existed in Russia. In 1765, Koninski, +the Bishop of the Greek Church presented to the King a petition asking +redress for a number of grievances which he enumerated. The King +promised relief and submitted the matter to the Diet of 1766. The +majority would not hear of any tolerance, although Russia had on the +frontier an army of 80,000 men ready to invade Poland. The Diet of +1767 showed the same foolish spirit, but it was broken when two of its +members, both Catholic bishops, were arrested under Russian orders, +and carried into Russian territory. The Diet did not appear to resent +this violation of a friendly territory but entered in 1768 into a +treaty with Russia, in which it was agreed that Poland would make no +change in its constitution without Russia's consent. The Russian army +was withdrawn from Warsaw, and a deputation from the Diet was sent to +St. Petersburg to thank Catherine.</p> + +<p>Two <span class="pagenum"><a id="page188" name="page188"></a>(p. 188)</span> hostile parties soon appeared in arms. The Catholics +raised the banner "Pro religione et libertate!"—as if they understood +what liberty meant! France helped with money, and urged the Sultan of +Turkey to declare war against Russia, so that Catherine would be +compelled to withdraw her troops. Russia was inciting those of the +Greek and Protestant religions to whom assistance was promised.</p> + +<p>In the winter of 1768, the Tartars of the Crimea, aided by the Turks, +invaded Russia, and Catherine dispatched an army of 30,000 men,—all +she could spare. In the following year, the Russians attacked and +defeated the enemy 100,000 strong at Khotin on the Dnieper, and in +1770 the Khan of the Crimea met the same fate. In the same year at the +battle of Kagul, 17,000 Russians defeated 150,000 Turks commanded by +the Grand Vizier. In the same year the Russians destroyed the Turkish +fleet in the port of Chesmé. In 1771, the Tartars of the Crimea were +put to rout, and the Russians took Bessarabia and some forts on the +Danube. They were, however, too late to take possession of the +Dardanelles, which the Turks had put into a state of defense.</p> + +<p>Austria was becoming alarmed at Russia's victories, and lent a willing +ear to the suggestion of Frederick the Great that it would be safer to +permit Russia to gain territory belonging to Poland, provided Austria +and Prussia should receive their share. On February 17, 1771, a treaty +was concluded between Russia and Prussia, and accepted by Austria in +April, whereby Poland was deprived of a good part of its territory. +Catherine, secured White Russia with a population of 1,600,000; +Frederick <span class="pagenum"><a id="page189" name="page189"></a>(p. 189)</span> the Great took West Prussia with 900,000 +inhabitants, and Austria received Western Gallicia and Red Russia with +2,500,000 people. This was the beginning of the end of Poland.</p> + +<p>The peace negotiations with Turkey were broken off, and war was +resumed. Being busy elsewhere, Catherine could not prevent a <i>coup +d'état</i> in Sweden, which saved that country from the fate of Poland. +Besides suffering from these constant wars, Russia was visited by the +plague, which in July and August, 1771, daily carried off a thousand +victims in Moscow alone. The Archbishop, an enlightened man, was put +to death by a mob for ordering the streets to be fumigated. Troops +were necessary to restore order.</p> + +<p>The condition of the country was dreadful. Alexander Bibikof was sent +to suppress a dangerous insurrection, he wrote to his wife after +arriving on the spot, that the general discontent was frightful. It +was for this reason that Catherine concluded peace with the sultan in +1774; besides an indemnity, she received Azof on the Don and all the +strong places in the Crimea, and was recognized as the protector of +the sultan's Christian subjects. In 1775, she finally broke the power +of the Cossacks.</p> + +<p>Through the mediation of France and Russia, a war between Prussia and +Austria concerning the succession in Bavaria, was narrowly averted. +During the American War of Independence, Russia, Sweden, Denmark, +Prussia, and Portugal, proclaimed armed neutrality, and Holland +declared war, because British warships caused endless trouble to +vessels under neutral flags. This celebrated act declared "that +contraband goods" included only <span class="pagenum"><a id="page190" name="page190"></a>(p. 190)</span> arms and ammunition. Most +countries agreed to this, with the exception of England.</p> + +<p>In 1775 Catherine annexed the Crimea, on the plea that anarchy +prevailed. Turkey protested and threatened war but France meditated +and the sultan recognized the annexation by the Treaty of +Constantinople in 1783.</p> + +<p>In 1787, a remarkable secret agreement was signed between Russia and +Austria. It is known as the <i>Greek Project</i>, and was nothing less than +a scheme to divide Turkey between the two powers. The plot as proposed +by Russia, was to create an independent state under the name of Dacia, +to embrace Moldavia, Wallachia, and Bessarabia, with a prince +belonging to the Greek Church at the head. Russia was to receive +Otchakof, the shore between the Bug and the Dnieper, and some islands +in the Archipelago, and Austria would annex the Turkish province +adjoining its territory. If the Turk should be expelled from Europe, +the old Byzantine Empire was to be reëstablished, and the throne +occupied by Catherine's grandson Constantine, "who would renounce all +his claims to Russia, so that the two empires might never be united +under the same scepter." Austria agreed on condition that she should +also receive the Venetian possessions in Moldavia, when Venice would +be indemnified by part of Greece.</p> + +<p>Soon after this the sultan declared war against Russia. This took +Catherine by surprise. Other enemies sprang up: the King of Prussia +wanted Dantzig, the King of Sweden, South Finland. The latter invaded +Russia and might have marched upon St. Petersburg, for all Catherine +could collect was an army of 12,000 men. A <span class="pagenum"><a id="page191" name="page191"></a>(p. 191)</span> mutiny in the +camp of Gustavus III, compelled him to return to Stockholm, and the +opportunity was lost. He defeated the Russians in the naval battle of +Svenska Sund, but a second engagement was to the advantage of Russia. +The French Revolution caused him to make peace, and to enter into an +alliance with Russia against the French.</p> + +<p>In the south Russian arms were more fortunate. The Turks were defeated +in 1789, and 1790, on which occasions a young general named Souvorof +distinguished himself. Upon the death of Joseph II of Austria, his +successor Leopold made peace with Turkey at Sistova. (1791.) It was +the French revolution, which seriously alarmed every crowned head in +Europe, and which induced Catherine to follow Leopold's example at +Jassy, in January, 1792, Russia kept only Otchakof and the shore +between the Bug and the Dniester.</p> + +<p>Poland, meanwhile, had made an earnest effort at reform. Thaddeus +Kosciusko had returned from the United States, where he had fought for +liberty and was trying to save his own country. Born in 1752, he +entered a military school founded by the Czartoryskis at the age of +twelve, and distinguished himself by attention to his studies and +duties. His father was assassinated by exasperated peasants, and he +himself was scornfully ejected by a powerful noble whose daughter he +was courting. Attracted by the struggle of a handful of colonists +against powerful England, he went to America and served with +distinction in the War of the Revolution. After seeing Great Britain +humbled and a new republic established in the New World, he came back +to Poland and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page192" name="page192"></a>(p. 192)</span> was soon among the foremost reformers,—a man +in whom the patriotic Poles justly trusted. But traitors were found to +accept Russian bribes, and for the second time Poland was despoiled. +Russia annexed the eastern provinces with 3,000,000 inhabitants, and +Prussia took Dantzig and Thorn. Austria was told that she might take +from the French Republic as much as she wished,—or could.</p> + +<p>Manfully and indefatigably did Kosciusko labor to stem the tide of his +country's ruin. His patriotism aroused even that of the poor, +down-trodden serfs, who had no interests to defend, yet stood by him +in battle when the nobles on horseback fled, and wrenched a victory +out of defeat. Well might Kosciusko thereafter dress in the garb of a +peasant; a gentleman's dress was a badge of dishonor.</p> + +<p>It was in 1794, that this battle took place and gave the signal, too, +for an effort to restore Poland. But Austria, Prussia, and Russia +combined, and Poland was lost. Heroic children were made to pay for +the sins of their fathers. Poland expired in 1795. Prussia took +Eastern Poland, including Warsaw; Austria annexed Cracow, Sandomir, +Lublin, and Selm, and Russia took what remained. The patriots +dispersed; most of them took service with the French, hoping for an +opportunity to revive their country.</p> + +<p>Catherine took especial pains to prevent the ideas, which alone made +the French revolution possible, from entering into Russia. There was +no occasion for this prudence. The great majority of the Russian +people did not know of any world beyond Russia; most of them knew +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page193" name="page193"></a>(p. 193)</span> nothing beyond the narrow horizon of their own village, and +could neither read nor write. The harrowing tales brought by the +fugitive French nobles did not tend toward inspiring the Russian +aristocracy with sympathy for Liberty, Equality, and Fraternity.</p> + +<p>Satisfied that Russia was beyond the sphere of what she regarded as +pernicious doctrines, Catherine determined to make the greatest +possible profit out of the disturbed condition of Europe. She never +ceased to incite Prussia and Austria against the French Republic, but +carefully refrained from spending a dollar or risking a man. She +pleaded first her war with Turkey, and afterwards the Polish +insurrection. She said to Osterman, one of her ministers: "Am I wrong? +For reasons that I cannot give to the Courts of Berlin and Vienna, I +wish to involve them in these affairs, so that I may have my hands +free. Many of my enterprises are still unfinished, and they must be so +occupied as to leave me unfettered."</p> + +<p>While Europe was engaged in the hopeless task of establishing and +maintaining the divine rights of kings, Catherine began a war with +Persia. One of her "unfinished enterprises" was interrupted by her +death in November, 1796, at the age of sixty-seven. She left the +throne to her son Paul.</p> + + + + +<h2>XXII—RUSSIA DURING THE WARS OF NAPOLEON. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page194" name="page194"></a>(p. 194)</span></h2> + + +<p>Paul was forty-two years old when he succeeded to the throne. His +youth and early manhood had been far from pleasant. His mother had +never shown any love for him, and Paul had not forgotten his father's +sudden death. He was held in absolute submission, and was not +permitted to share in the government; he had not even a voice in the +education of his children. The courtiers, in order to please his +mother, showed him scant courtesy; this is probably the reason of his +sensitiveness after he came to the throne. He ordered men and women to +kneel down in the street when he was passing, and those who drove in +carriages had to halt. It is also shown in this remark, "Know that the +only person of consideration in Russia is the person whom I address, +at the moment that I am addressing him." It was justice, but it +reflected upon his mother's memory when, immediately after her death, +Paul ordered his father's remains to be exhumed, to be buried at the +same time and with the same pomp as those of Catherine.</p> + +<p>Such a man could have no sympathy with the French revolution which was +shaking the foundations of Old Europe. He forbade the use of any word +that might be <span class="pagenum"><a id="page195" name="page195"></a>(p. 195)</span> construed to refer to it. He ordered the army +to adopt the Russian uniform, including the powdered pigtails of that +time. Souvorof fell in disgrace because he was reported to have said: +"There is powder and powder. Shoe buckles are not gun carriages, nor +pigtails bayonets; we are not Prussians but Russians."</p> + +<p>Paul pardoned a number of exiled Poles, and brought the last king, +Stanislas Poniatowski, to St. Petersburg. He discontinued the war with +Persia, and instructed his ambassadors to announce that since Russia, +and Russia alone, had been at war since 1756, "the humanity of the +Emperor did not allow him to refuse his beloved subjects the peace for +which they sighed."</p> + +<p>Nevertheless, Russia was drawn into Napoleon's gigantic wars. Uneasy +at the plans of the French Republic, Paul entered into an alliance +with England, Austria, Naples, and Turkey. He furnished troops for +England's descent upon Holland, and recalled Souvorof to take command +of the Russian forces cooperating with those of Austria. The British +expedition proved a failure, but Souvorof's strategy and indomitable +courage shed glory upon the Russian army.</p> + +<p>When Souvorof arrived at Vienna, he took command of the allied forces +consisting of 90,000 men. On April 28, 1799, he surprised Moreau at +Cassano and took 3,000 prisoners. He entered Milan, and soon after +laid siege to Mantua, Alessandria, and Turin. On June 17, Souvorof was +attacked on the Trebia; the battle lasted three days, leaving the +victory to the Russians. After the victory at Novi, on the 15th of +August, the French were forced to evacuate Italy.</p> + +<p>Souvorof <span class="pagenum"><a id="page196" name="page196"></a>(p. 196)</span> had divided his force of 80,000 Russians into two +corps, one to operate in Switzerland, the other under his own command, +to conduct the campaign in Italy. His great success brought upon him +the envy of the Austrian generals, by whom his movements were +constantly hampered. He therefore resolved to effect a junction with +the forces in Switzerland, who, on the 26th of September, had been +defeated at Zurich with a loss of 6,000 men. Souvorof did not know +this. He reached the St. Gothard on the 21st and crossed it under +unheard-of difficulties. "In this kingdom of terrors," he writes to +Paul, "abysses open beside us at every step, like tombs awaiting our +arrival. Nights spent among the clouds, thunder that never ceases, +rain, fog, the noise of cataracts, the breaking of avalanches, +enormous masses of rocks and ice which fall from the heights, torrents +which sometimes carry men and horses down the precipices, the St. +Gothard, that colossus who sees the mists pass under him,—we have +surmounted all, and in these inaccessible spots the enemy has been +forced to give way before us. Words fail to describe the horrors we +have seen, and in the midst of which Providence has preserved us." +"The Russian, inhabitant of the plain, was awestruck by the grandeur +of this mountain scenery."</p> + +<p>Souvorof brushed the French out of his way until, on the 26th, he +arrived at Altdorf with the loss of only 2,000 men. Here he received +information of the defeat at Zurich, and saw that he was surrounded on +all sides by superior forces. His retreat showed the highest military +skill, as well as the man's indomitable energy. Over untrodden +mountains, and snow at one place five feet deep, he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page197" name="page197"></a>(p. 197)</span> guided +the remains of his army to a lower altitude, and went into winter +quarters between the Iler and the Lech.</p> + +<p>Souvorof complained bitterly to the czar of the Austrian generals, who +had given him ample reason. At about this time Napoleon had returned +from his fruitless campaign in Egypt, and at Marengo defeated the +Austrians, whereby the results of Souvorof's campaign were lost. Paul +was angry at Austria and Great Britain. Napoleon, shrewdly guessed the +czar's feelings, released the Russian prisoners, after equipping them +anew. Paul satisfied that Napoleon was an enemy of republican +institutions, conceived an intense admiration for his military genius, +and came to an understanding with him to overthrow British rule in +India. The czar at once commenced to prepare its execution. Two armies +were formed; one was to march on the Upper Indus by way of Khiva and +Bokhara, while the Cossacks under their hetman Denisof would go by +Orenburg. He was confident that the gigantic task could be +accomplished, and sent daily instructions to the hetman.</p> + +<p>Napoleon had a far better idea of the difficulties, but he did not +consider the expedition as hopeless. But even if it failed, he would +be the winner, because England would be compelled to send most of her +navy to India, while Russia would be too fully occupied, to interfere +with his projects in Europe. The Cossacks started on their long +journey, by crossing the Volga on the floating ice when, on the 24th +of March, 1801, Paul was assassinated in his palace.</p> + +<p>There was no doubt as to the guilty men, but Paul's son, Alexander, +who succeeded him, did not order an investigation. Pahlen, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page198" name="page198"></a>(p. 198)</span> +Panine, Zoubof, and others, known as the "men of the 24th of March," +were removed from office, but that was their only punishment. Paul's +mother had alienated her grandchildren from the father, and Alexander +always showed greater affection for Catherine than for Paul. The +greatest sufferer was Napoleon, who saw his grand schemes go up in +smoke. Alexander reversed his father's policy, both at home and +abroad. He came to an understanding with England. Napoleon tried +earnestly to secure the new czar's friendship. He wanted a free hand +in Europe and in return offered the same privilege in Asia, but +Alexander mistrusted the First Consul. The murder of the Duke of +Enghien, who, by Napoleon's order, was kidnaped in a neutral territory +and shot,—still further alienated the czar.</p> + +<p>After Napoleon's coronation as emperor, Alexander entered into an +alliance with England, whereby he would receive six million dollars +for every 100,000 men Russia placed in the field. The Emperor of +Austria and the King of Prussia joined, but the Austrians, whose +generals seemed unable to learn by experience, were defeated before +the Russian army could reach the Tyrol. Once again the Russians +covered themselves with glory by Koutouzof's masterly retreat to the +north, and Bagration's heroic self-sacrifice. At Olmutz, in the +presence of Alexander, the Russo-Austrian army, 80,000 strong, was +attacked by Napoleon with 70,000 men. The Austrians had induced the +czar to adopt their plan of battle, and it met with the usual result. +Alexander escaped, escorted by his physician, two Cossacks, and a +company of the Guards. (Dec. 2., 1805.) Twenty-four days later +Alexander concluded <span class="pagenum"><a id="page199" name="page199"></a>(p. 199)</span> peace with France by the Treaty of +Presburg.</p> + +<p>The growing power of Napoleon induced Alexander to enter into a new +coalition with England, Prussia, and Sweden. Russia bore the brunt of +the war, after Prussia had been rendered harmless after the battles of +Jena and Auerstadt. The Russians withdrew from Prussian Poland; they +suddenly left their winter quarters and attacked the French. On the +8th of February, one of the bloodiest battles was fought at Eylau; the +French claimed the victory, but it was barren of results.</p> + +<p>Napoleon dreaded Russia. He persuaded the Sultan of Turkey and the +Shah of Persia to declare war, so as to occupy Alexander elsewhere. +The czar, however, was loyal to his allies until, on the 14th of June, +his army was almost annihilated at Friedland. This loss compelled him +to enter into negotiations. On June 25, 1807, the two emperors met on +a raft at Tilsit. Napoleon was prepared to do almost anything that +would induce Alexander to cease interfering in Europe. An +offensive-defensive alliance was concluded, whereby Napoleon agreed +not to oppose the expulsion of the Turk or Russia's conquest of +Constantinople. The czar meant to carry out the treaty in letter and +in spirit, but he soon saw that Napoleon's ambition was limitless, and +that he was playing with his ally. This was evident by the proposed +partition of Turkey: nothing came of it. Still he accepted Napoleon's +invitation to a conference at Erfurt, where he was received by the +French Emperor amid a court composed of sovereigns and princes. A +convention was signed on the 12th of October, 1808, whereby Alexander +promised <span class="pagenum"><a id="page200" name="page200"></a>(p. 200)</span> Napoleon a free hand, in return for the annexation +by Russia of Finland and the Turkish provinces on the Danube.</p> + +<p>This led to a war with Great Britain, Sweden, and Austria, not +including Turkey and Persia. Russia acquired Finland, when Alexander, +after convoking the Diet, guaranteed its constitution, privileges, and +university. In 1809, war again broke out between Austria and France. +By the terms of the alliance, Russia had agreed to furnish troops, but +they showed that they did not relish fighting with the French. There +were two engagements; in one of these, the casualties were one Russian +killed and two wounded. By an oversight of Napoleon the Poles serving +under him were to cooperate with the Russians, and, far from doing so, +they often came to blows. The Russian general constantly sent +complaints to the czar. Napoleon made a great effort to appease +Alexander by assigning to Russia Eastern Gallicia with a population of +400,000. Alexander declined to be represented in the peace +negotiations at Vienna. Napoleon's creation of the Grand Dukedom of +Warsaw was a constant menace to Russia.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile the Russians were uniformly victorious in Turkey; the czar +concluded peace only when it was evident that war with France was +unavoidable, and that Russia would need every man. It was on this +account that he gave easy terms to the hard-pressed Sultan. Russia +annexed Bessarabia, part of Roumania, Ismaïl, and Kilia on the Lower +Danube.</p> + +<p>The time for the momentous struggle had arrived. Napoleon, the master +of Continental Europe, thought that he was more than a match for +serf-ridden Russia. He reckoned <span class="pagenum"><a id="page201" name="page201"></a>(p. 201)</span> upon the echo which the +words liberty, equality, and fraternity, would awaken in the hearts of +the moujik, and forgot that they were abstract ideas which to the +serf, struggling for enough black bread to allay the cravings of +hunger, were so many empty sounds. He tried to arouse Europe's +suspicions of Russia's designs, not thinking that any yoke, even that +of the Tartars, would be a welcome relief to nations mourning for the +slaughter of their sons.</p> + +<p>Napoleon left Paris for Dresden on the 9th of May, 1812; on the first +of June an army of 678,000 men, including 60,000 Poles, stood ready to +invade Russia. Alexander had only 150,000 men under Bagration and +Barclay de Tolly, 90,000 posted on the Niemen, and 60,000 on the +Vistula; but he issued a proclamation announcing a Holy War. "Rise all +of you!" he urged, "With the Cross in your hearts and arms in your +hands, no human force can prevail against you!"</p> + +<p>Napoleon advanced clutching shadows. After his army left Wilna, +leaving dead desolation in its wake, the time soon came when retreat +was no longer possible. Russian patriotism clamored for battle and +Russian prudence had to give way to it. All of Koutouzof's remarkable +influence was required to restrain his men under the retreat which +foretold victory, because every step forward sealed Napoleon's doom. +The Corsican knew it but, with the superstition born in him, trusted +to his star. Finally he drew near Moscow, the Holy City, where Count +Rostopchine, the governor, was preparing the grand climax of the +drama, while pacifying Russian patriotism by a series of hardy +falsehoods. "I have resolved," he explained, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page202" name="page202"></a>(p. 202)</span> "at every +disagreeable piece of news to raise doubts as to its truth; by this +means, I shall weaken the first impression, and before there is time +to verify it, others will come which will require investigation." The +people implicitly believed his most daring inventions. When he +evacuated Moscow, he ordered all prisons to be opened, and the guns in +the arsenal to be distributed among the people; he also had the pumps +removed and finally gave instructions to set fire to the stores of +<i>vodka</i> and the boats loaded with alcohol.</p> + +<p>Napoleon arrived at the Kremlin on the 14th of September. Short as was +his sojourn, it was with difficulty that he escaped through the flames +and found refuge in a park. Why did he waste thirty-five days in the +charred capital? Was it belief in his star, or was it despair at the +ruin of his prospects? On the 13th of October, the remnant of the +Grand Army started on its long journey over the desert it had left +behind, because all other roads were closed to it. The retreat has +been described by many writers; but what pen shall do justice to the +suffering caused by the unusually severe winter, the snow, the ice, +the hunger, and the thirst? And how many hearts were rent, when the +news came of the dead, the wounded, and the missing? Napoleon's +campaign in Russia was the most impressive sermon against war, but it +fell upon heedless ears.</p> + +<p>After the Battle of the Berezina, Napoleon left the army and hurried +home. All his thoughts were on the effect of the disastrous +defeat,—not upon the hundred thousand desolate homes, but upon his +own fortunes. He arrived in Paris where he gathered 450,000 men, many +of them <span class="pagenum"><a id="page203" name="page203"></a>(p. 203)</span> mere youths, to support him with their blood. But +Europe was weary of slaughter. Kings might tremble for their crowns, +it was the people, aroused to frenzy, that impelled them to action. On +Napoleon's heels, besides, there was a bloodhound whom nobler +instincts than mere self-preservation inspired to ceaseless pursuit. +Alexander I, at this time, earned and deserved the glorious surname of +The Well-beloved. Not a thought of self-glory or personal +aggrandizement sullied the relentless chase. Emperors and kings +dreading the awakened conscience of the people would have made peace, +and they could have done so with security for themselves, but +Alexander said, "No!" Under fire at the four days' battle of Leipzig, +he personally directed reënforcements where they were required. And +when, at last, the host of invaders stepped on the soil whose people +during twenty years had committed outrages in almost every known +country of Europe, they were noble words which the Autocrat addressed +to his troops whom he had brought so far away from home. "By invading +our empire," he says, "the enemy has done us much harm, and has +therefore been subjected to a terrible chastisement. The anger of God +has overthrown him. Do not let us imitate him. The merciful God does +not love cruel and inhuman men. Let us forget the evil he has wrought; +let us carry to our foes, not vengeance and hate, but friendship, and +a hand extended in peace."</p> + +<p>These were not mere words; Alexander the Well-beloved was sincere. But +it was he who refused to receive Napoleon's envoy at Freiburg, and it +was he who, when Napoleon, fighting like a tiger at bay, was +defeating <span class="pagenum"><a id="page204" name="page204"></a>(p. 204)</span> the separated armies, so that the British envoy +urged to come to terms with him, answered, "It would not be a peace +but a truce. I cannot come four hundred leagues to your assistance +every day. No peace, so long as Napoleon is on the throne!" By his +direction the united armies rolled like an avalanche upon Paris,—and +Napoleon gave up the struggle by abdicating.</p> + +<p>Again it was Alexander the Well-beloved who intervened when other +powers would have overwhelmed the fallen colossus. It was Alexander +who procured for his enemy the sovereignty of the island of Elba, and +commissioned Count Schouvalof to escort him. "I confide to you a great +mission;" he said; "you will answer to me with your head for a single +hair which falls from the head of Napoleon."</p> + +<p>At the Congress of Vienna assembled the statesmen to dispose of +nations and peoples, as their own ambition prompted. Alexander desired +to unite Poland to his crown, but separate from Russia; but was +opposed by Austria, Great Britain, and France, who entered into a +secret alliance against him. Had Napoleon waited two hundred days +instead of half that time, who knows that he might not yet have been +the arbiter of Europe? His descent united all factions, and Alexander +declared that he would pursue Napoleon "down to his last man and his +last ruble."</p> + +<p>Once again armies were set in motion, and once again Napoleon resorted +to his well-known tactics of destroying his enemies one by one. He +failed at Waterloo. (June 17, 1815.) Again the allies re-entered +Paris, the Prussians first but closely followed by the czar and his +army.</p> + +<p>"Justice, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page205" name="page205"></a>(p. 205)</span> but no revenge!" proclaimed Alexander when Blücher +would have followed Napoleon's example of robbing a country of its +works of art. The czar stood the friend of France when Prussia +demanded a frontier which would render her safe from French invasion; +but he said frankly that he "wished to allow some danger to exist on +that side, so that Germany, having need of Russia, might remain +dependent," He was in favor of allowing the French to select their own +government, but was overruled. At last the allies came to an +understanding, and Poland was joined to the Russian Crown.</p> + +<p>The Polish soldiers who had fought so bravely under Napoleon, placed +themselves at the czar's service, hoping and trusting that their +country would revive under a Russian king. Alexander's promises at +Vienna had been vague, but recent events had made a deep impression +upon him. In this frame of mind, he directed that Poland be restored. +This was announced on the 21st of June, at Warsaw amid the roar of +cannon. Constantine, Alexander's brother, was made King, and a +legislative body, composed of a senate and house of representatives, +was formed under a constitution which also guaranteed the freedom of +the press.</p> + +<p>Thus Alexander returned to Russia. Soon after that he gave evidence +that strong emotions were required to subdue the inborn prejudice in +favor of autocracy. Russia, of necessity, had acquired an overwhelming +influence in Europe. This showed at the several Congresses, at +Aix-la-Chapelle in 1818, at Carlsbad in 1819, at Troppau in 1820, and +at Verona in 1822. The crowned heads of Europe appeared unable to +comprehend that the French revolution, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page206" name="page206"></a>(p. 206)</span> with its orgies of +blood and tears, had produced an impassable abyss between the +eighteenth and nineteenth centuries. They wished to return to the +conditions prevailing before the revolution, which caused the success +of that upheaval; but the people, the masses, had quaffed of the cup +of liberty, and the taste lingered. The Holy Alliance with its unholy +aims might ordain what it pleased, the <i>people</i> obstinately refused to +resume the place of beasts of burden for the benefit of the State. +Thus a spirit of unrest was perceptible, and when Alexander learned +that his "I, the czar, will it!" was not able to restore quiet, he +joined the other crowned heads in their struggle against more liberal +ideas. From that time his conduct changed.</p> + +<p>There was evidence of this in the events occurring in the south. The +majority of the inhabitants of the Balkan provinces of Turkey belonged +to the Greek Church, and looked to Alexander for relief from the +oppressive Mahomedan yoke. The Servians took up arms, the people of +Greece did the same. On Easter day, 1821, the Patriarch of the Greek +Church at Constantinople was seized at the altar, and hung in his +vestment at the door of the church. Three metropolitans and eight +bishops were also murdered. The news caused deep indignation in +Russia, but Alexander moved not. He believed in the theory that no +people should be encouraged in rising against its ordained masters. In +Russia all liberal ideas were rigidly suppressed.</p> + +<p>In 1825, Alexander left St. Petersburg for the south where he intended +to spend some time. He was full of gloomy forebodings and gave further +evidence of an unsound <span class="pagenum"><a id="page207" name="page207"></a>(p. 207)</span> mind by having a mass for the dead +sung in his presence in broad daylight. While in the Crimea he was +heard to repeat: "They may say what they like of me, but I have lived +and will die a republican." He died on the 19th of November, 1825, +while on his journey.</p> + +<p>He left no sons. His brother Constantine had renounced the crown when +he became King of Poland, and in 1823, Alexander had made his next +brother Nicholas his successor. Alexander's reign marked a new era for +Russia inasmuch as it was brought into closer contact with Europe, and +promised to change in thought and impulse, from an Asiatic into a +European nation. The necessity of securing the help of the masses +against Napoleon's invasion created newspapers, and writers of unusual +ability expressed their patriotic thoughts in prose and poetry. In +1814, the Imperial Library was opened to the public at St. Petersburg. +It contained at that time 242,000 volumes, and about 10,000 +manuscripts.</p> + +<p>In 1803, Captains Krusenstern and Lisianski made the first Russian +voyage around the world in the <i>Nadejda</i> (the <i>Hope</i>), and the <i>Neva</i>. +It was on this occasion that Russia entered into relations with the +United States.</p> + + + + +<h2>XXIII—AN EVENTFUL PERIOD. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page208" name="page208"></a>(p. 208)</span></h2> + + +<p>Alexander's will came as a surprise upon Nicholas, but Constantine was +loyal to his promise and after a brief but generous contest, Nicholas +was crowned at Moscow. Twenty-three days had elapsed since Alexander's +death, long enough to show that the spirit of unrest had penetrated +into Russia. On the 26th of December there were some disturbances at +Moscow, but they were suppressed without great trouble. The secret +police hunted down the leaders, many of whom were known in art or +literature, but they suffered death. Nicholas, a man of colossal +stature, commanding appearance, iron will, passion for a military +life, of simple and correct habits, was a true champion of the right +divine of kings. He had neither sympathy nor patience with any +movement tending toward greater liberty for the people. Nevertheless +Nicholas was much more popular than Alexander had been, because he was +the type of the Russian czars, who had increased Russia's power and +territory.</p> + +<p>Not many days after his coronation, Nicholas became involved in a +quarrel with the Shah of Persia. In vain did the shah call upon Great +Britain for help; the Persians were twice defeated in 1826, and the +Russians were on <span class="pagenum"><a id="page209" name="page209"></a>(p. 209)</span> the road to Teheran when the shah preferred +to save his capital by ceding two provinces, and paying a heavy +indemnity in 1828. The following year, the Russian Minister at Teheran +was murdered, but Persia escaped with a humble apology.</p> + +<p>Turkey, too, was made to feel Nicholas' heavy hand; urged by other +powers the sultan submitted to the loss of territory in Asia, which +had been in dispute, and permitted the free passage of Russian vessels +between the Black Sea and the Mediterranean. (Convention of Akkerman, +Oct. 8, 1826.) The czar, after this, took up the Greek question, and +entered into an agreement with England and France. In vain did the +sultan offer the plea which had been successful with Alexander, that +the Greeks "violated the passive obedience owed by subjects to their +legitimate sovereigns." Nicholas wanted Turkey for himself, and +proposed to leave no stone unturned to secure possession of +Constantinople.</p> + +<p>After the battle of Navarino, on the 20th of October, 1827, where the +allied forces destroyed the Turkish fleet. England withdrew, +suspicious of Nicholas' schemes; but France and Russia continued the +war until by the Peace of Adrianople, the sultan recognized the +independence of Greece,—and ceded to Russia four fortresses in Asia +and the islands in the delta of the Danube. Russia was thus in +possession of the whole southern slope of the Caucasus, besides +holding part of its northern front. The czar began war upon the tribes +dwelling in the mountains, but found that he had engaged in a very +difficult enterprise. A soldier-priest named Schamyl defied the power +of Russia for a quarter of a century. It cost Nicholas <span class="pagenum"><a id="page210" name="page210"></a>(p. 210)</span> more +in men and money to subdue the liberty-loving mountaineer, than all +the wars he waged in Asia.</p> + +<p>The year 1830, was one of great unrest in Europe. Nicholas was deeply +angered when his friend Charles X of France was expelled. The +revolution in Paris was the signal for a similar movement in the +capital of Poland. Owing to the independent expression of opinion in +the Diet, Alexander had adjourned that body indefinitely in 1822. At +the same time the liberty of the press was revoked and the police +assumed a power in defiance of the law. The Grand Duke Constantine was +really a friend of Poland, but he was eccentric and impetuous and +often unconsciously gave offense. In 1830, Nicholas came to Warsaw to +open the Diet, when its members made demands which he could not grant. +Both sides were angry when Nicholas returned to St. Petersburg.</p> + +<p>As soon as the French tricolor was raised above the consulate at +Warsaw, the trouble commenced. Taken unprepared, Constantine withdrew +with his troops. Again the Poles were divided; the patriots advised +reconciliation with Russia, while hotheads demanded the abdication of +the Romanofs. The first party sent a deputation to St. Petersburg and +another to Paris and London, to secure mediation. The czar's answer +was decisive; he absolutely refused to "make concessions (to the +revolutionists), as the price of their crimes." Again, too, there was +discord among the leaders as they entered upon a life or death +struggle. Poland appealed to Europe. The people were sympathetic, but +the governments, rejoicing at seeing a revolutionary movement +suppressed, refused to interfere.</p> + +<p>In <span class="pagenum"><a id="page211" name="page211"></a>(p. 211)</span> February, 1831, a Russian army of 130,000 men invaded +Poland. The Poles showed a heroism which appealed to the people of +Europe, but more than sympathy was needed to arrest the irresistible +Russian advance upon Warsaw. Constantine and the Russian +commander-in-chief fell the victims of cholera, but an epidemic of +discord struck Poland and sealed its fate. On the 6th of September, +Warsaw was invested. The capital was forced to surrender. "Warsaw is +at your feet," wrote the commander-in-chief to the czar, who lost no +time in trampling upon the conquered. The constitution was abrogated, +the Diet, a thing of the past. Poland was no more. Where it had stood, +was a Russian province. Russian officials introduced Russian taxes, +Russian coinage, and Russian justice such as it was. The Poles saw +samples of it when thousands were arrested without process of law, and +were sent to prison or to Siberia, while other thousands lost their +property by confiscation. In White Russia and Lithuania the use of the +Polish language was prohibited and the Catholic Clergy were forced to +"ask" admittance to the bosom of the Greek Church. It must be admitted +that the Polish peasants benefited by the change. With a view of +reducing the influence of the nobles, the government issued +regulations protecting the laborer against the landowner.</p> + +<p>The Polish revolution caused the reorganization of European policies. +Austria and Prussia, each in possession of territory that formerly +belonged to Poland, entered into friendly relations with Russia, +whereas England and France, where public opinion could not be +ignored, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page212" name="page212"></a>(p. 212)</span> drew more closely together. Nicholas was posing as +the arbiter of Europe and the champion of kings. He assumed the right +to command, but would soon find his will contested.</p> + +<p>This was brought home to him in 1832, when trouble broke out between +Turkey and Egypt. The Egyptian army was victorious and threatened +Constantinople, when the sultan appealed to the powers. Russia +responded at once by sending two armies, but a strong protest from +England and France caused the withdrawal of the troops of Russia as +well as those of Egypt. Baffled, Nicholas on June 3, 1833, entered +into an offensive-defensive alliance with the sultan, which really +placed Turkey and with it Constantinople in Russia's power. Another +sharp protest from England and France prevented the consummation of +the alliance.</p> + +<p>In 1839 the trouble between Turkey and Egypt recommenced when Great +Britain, anxious to preserve Turkey's integrity, entered into an +agreement with Russia, Austria and Prussia, which was signed at London +in July, 1840. There was some danger of a war with France but England, +fearing Russia's designs, returned to her former ally. By the +Convention of July 13, 1841, Russia's designs upon old Czargrad were +postponed until a more favorable opportunity. In 1844, Nicholas +visited England, but his reception in London was cool. He, however, +entered into an agreement whereby the Khanates of Central Asia should +remain neutral ground between Russia and India.</p> + +<p>In 1846, trouble broke out in Gallicia, where the Poles rose against +Austria; but as the nobles had to subdue a <span class="pagenum"><a id="page213" name="page213"></a>(p. 213)</span> revolt of their +own peasants, order was quickly restored. The free city Cracow was the +resort of the Poles. Russia, Austria, and Prussia sent troops against +it, and Cracow was annexed by Austria notwithstanding a protest from +England and France.</p> + +<p>The year 1848 will long be remembered for the blows bestowed upon the +divine right of kings, and the privileges which the sovereigns were +compelled to concede to the people. The Emperor Ferdinand of Austria +was expelled from his capital, and the King of Prussia was subjected +to humiliation by his own people. France proclaimed the republic, and +Nicholas proclaimed himself the champion of the right divine. He +dispatched an army into Hungary, which was soon "at the feet of your +Majesty," and felt the wrath of the frightened Ferdinand.</p> + +<p>Notwithstanding this cooperation, the understanding among the three +powers, Russia, Austria and Prussia, was giving way before individual +interests. When, in 1852, Prussia attempted to seize the German +provinces of Denmark, it was Nicholas who compelled her to withdraw. +On the 8th of May of that year, the independence and integrity of +Denmark were recognized by the Treaty of London.</p> + +<p>In the same year Louis Napoleon made an end to the French Republic by +the notorious <i>Coup d'État</i>. This gave great satisfaction to the czar +who was heard to remark: "France has set an evil example; she will now +set a good one. I have faith in the conduct of Louis Napoleon." The +new emperor of France did not seem to appreciate this condescension, +or else he showed gross ingratitude <span class="pagenum"><a id="page214" name="page214"></a>(p. 214)</span> when France and Austria, +without even consulting Nicholas, settled some troubles in Turkey. The +czar sent Menzikoff as special envoy to Constantinople to demand a new +treaty whereby Russia's rights as Protector of the Greek Christians +should be recognized. Supported as he was by France, the sultan +refused. Nicholas then had a plain talk with Sir Hamilton Seymour, the +British Minister at St. Petersburg, wherein he revealed his designs +upon Turkey. As to Constantinople, he said, he might establish himself +there as a trustee, but not as a proprietor. Sir Hamilton, as in duty +bound, notified his government, and England hastened to join France in +opposing Russia.</p> + +<p>Pretending that all he wanted was a recognition of his rights, +Nicholas, on the 3d of July, 1853, sent an army under Gortchakof +across the Pruth. At this an allied British-French fleet took up a +position near the threatened point, but did not cross the Straits, +which would have been a violation of the treaty. Nicholas stormed; he +declared that "This was a threat" and would lead to complications. +Austria proposed a conference at which Russia, Great Britain, France, +Austria and Prussia assisted. It seemed as if peace would be secured, +when the sultan demanded that the Russian forces should withdraw, +whereupon Admiral Nakhimof, on the 30th of November, 1853, destroyed +the Turkish fleet at Sinopé. The British-French fleet then sailed into +the Black Sea, and the Russian ships sought shelter in the ports.</p> + +<p>In January, 1854, Napoleon III made a last attempt at maintaining +peace, but Nicholas was thoroughly angry at the publication of +Seymour's dispatches, claiming that the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page215" name="page215"></a>(p. 215)</span> conversation with +the British Minister was entitled to secrecy as between "a friend and +a gentleman." Austria and Prussia resented the contempt which the czar +had expressed for them, and on the 10th of April England and France +entered into an offensive-defensive alliance. Ten days later Austria +and Prussia arrived at a written agreement providing for the +possibility that the Russians should attack Austria or cross the +Balkans. Nicholas had aroused all Europe against him.</p> + +<p>The Russian fleet was unable to cope with that of the allies, and thus +condemned to inactivity in the ports. After heroic efforts, the +Russians were compelled to raise the siege of Silistria, and to retire +from the Danube, while Austria occupied the evacuated territory. But +Nicholas was dismayed when, after a conference on July 21, 1854, the +allied commanders resolved to attack the Crimea. <i>Russia was +unprepared.</i> It was the assault upon Russia's vaunted "holy soil," +which gave a severe blow to the arbiter of Europe, at home as well as +abroad. Still with clogged energy the Russians worked to construct +defenses. On the 14th of September 500 troopships landed the allied +armies, and on the 20th, the Battle of the Alma opened the road to +Sebastopol. The port of Balaclava was captured by the allies, and +three bloody battles were fought, at Balaclava on the 25th of October, +at Inkermann on the 5th of November, and at Eupatoria on the 17th of +February, 1855.</p> + +<p>It seemed as if the knowledge that an enemy was in Russia, aroused the +Russians from a torpor. Pamphlets and other publications denouncing +the government in withering terms, seemed to spring up from the +pavement. "Arise, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page216" name="page216"></a>(p. 216)</span> Oh Russia!" says one unknown writer, +"Devoured by enemies, ruined by slavery, shamefully oppressed by the +stupidity of tchinovnik and spies, awaken from thy long sleep of +ignorance and apathy! We have been kept in bondage long enough <i>by the +successors of the Tartar khans</i>. Arise! and stand erect and calm +before the throne of the despot; demand of him a reckoning for the +national misfortunes. Tell him boldly that his throne is not the altar +of God, and that God has not condemned us to be slaves forever."</p> + +<p>The feeling among his people was not unknown to Nicholas. Whatever may +be said of him, he was not weakling, fool, or hypocrite, and it was no +disgrace that he felt as if the ground were giving way under his feet. +He was upright and sincere, and had lived up to his convictions. There +is no doubt that when these convictions grew dim, his strength +vanished. He was heard to exclaim "My successor may do what he will: I +cannot change." The sincerity of this man of iron showed in his losing +his courage when doubts arose. Life ceased to have any value for him. +One day, in February, 1855, while suffering from a severe cold, he +went out without his overcoat. To the physician who tried to restrain +him, he said: "You have done your duty; now let me do mine!" A serious +illness followed, and he sent for his successor to whom he gave some +instructions. As a message to his people, and a last cry for sympathy, +he dictated the dispatch "The emperor is dying," which was sent to all +the large towns of Russia. On the 19th of March, 1855, Nicholas I was +dead.</p> + +<p>Under his directions wealthy merchants were classified as <span class="pagenum"><a id="page217" name="page217"></a>(p. 217)</span> +"chief citizens," which procured for them exemption from poll-tax, +conscription, and corporal punishment. They might take part in the +assessment of real estate, and were eligible to the offices to which +members of the first class were entitled. The same privilege was +extended to all who were entitled to the degree of Master of Arts, and +free-born and qualified artists. It was he who built the first railway +in Russia, by drawing a straight line between Moscow and St. +Petersburg. He also joined the Volga and the Don by a canal. His reign +is also noted for the progress of Russian literature. The works of +Ivan Tourguénief are known throughout the civilized world.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page218" name="page218"></a>(p. 218)</span> +<a id="img014" name="img014"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img014.jpg" width="400" height="587" alt="Alexander II" title="Alexander II"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Alexander II</p> + + + + +<h2>XXIV—ALEXANDER II, THE LIBERATOR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page219" name="page219"></a>(p. 219)</span></h2> + + +<p>Alexander II was thirty-seven years old when he succeeded to the +throne. The war oppressed Russia, and he felt that peace must be +concluded. But Russian diplomacy loves the tortuous path. The first +proclamation of the czar announced that he promised "to accomplish the +plans and desires of our illustrious predecessors, Peter, Catherine, +Alexander the Well-beloved, and our father of imperishable memory." It +was hoped that this would cause the other powers to propose peace, on +account of the expense of the war. Indeed, a conference was proposed +and took place at Vienna, but the demands of the allies were not so +modest as Russia expected; hence the war continued, and with it the +siege of Sebastopol.</p> + +<p>The Danube territory was lost to Russia since, on the 2d December +1854, Austria had undertaken to defend it, and Prussia had agreed to +help Austria. But Sebastopol was stubbornly defended. In the latter +part of August 1855, 874 guns vomited death and destruction upon the +doomed city where the Russians lost 18,000 men. The French had dug +fifty miles of trenches during the 366 days of the siege, and 4,100 +feet of mines before a single bastion. In one day 70,000 bombs and +shells were <span class="pagenum"><a id="page220" name="page220"></a>(p. 220)</span> fired into the town. On the 8th of September the +assault was ordered, and Sebastopol fell.</p> + +<p>Again Russia tried what boasting would effect. Gortchakof declared to +whoever chose to believe him that he would not voluntarily abandon the +country where Saint Vladimir had received baptism, and the official +newspaper announced that the war was now becoming serious, and that +Sebastopol being destroyed, a stronger fortress would be built. This +meant that Russia was anxious to secure favorable terms. The war had +cost 250,000 men, and Russia's credit at home was in a bad condition. +Austria offered the basis of an agreement which was accepted by +Russia, and on the 25th of February, 1856, a Congress met at Paris. +Five days later the Treaty of Paris was signed. Russia renounced the +right of protecting the Christians in the Danubian principalities, and +restored the delta of that river. The Black Sea was opened to merchant +vessels of all nations, but closed to all warships, and no arsenals +were to be constructed on its shores. The sultan agreed to renew the +privileges of his Christian subjects, but with the understanding that +the powers should not find cause to interfere. It was a hard blow to +Russia's prestige, and indefinitely postponed the execution of making +of Russia the restored Eastern Roman Empire.</p> + +<p>Alexander, in many respects, was the opposite of his father; he seemed +more like his uncle in his younger days when he earned the surname of +Well-beloved. It may be, however, that Alexander was but the executor +of his father's instructions, after doubt began to torture him. It is +known that Nicholas had seriously considered the <span class="pagenum"><a id="page221" name="page221"></a>(p. 221)</span> +emancipation of the serfs. Alexander took it up in earnest. There were +two serious difficulties, namely, the compensation to be allowed to +the serf owners, and the extent of the soil to be allotted to the +serfs. It must be remembered that, although the peasant had become +resigned to serve the landowner, his proverb: "Our backs are the +owner's, but the soil is our own," showed how stubbornly he held to +the conviction that it was his own land which he cultivated, however +little profit he derived from his toil. For once the tchinovnik dared +not interfere; public opinion had so strongly condemned their +incompetence and dishonesty that the Russian official was glad to +efface himself; the landowners, on the other hand, showed little +enthusiasm. They knew what their revenues were, but not what they +would be under altered circumstances.</p> + +<p>Soon after the Treaty of Paris had restored peace, Alexander addressed +his "faithful nobles" at Moscow, inviting them to consult about the +proper measures to be taken with the view to emancipation. When this +produced no results, he appointed a Committee, "for the amelioration +of the condition of the peasants." The nobles of Poland, seeing what +was coming, declared themselves ready to emancipate their serfs. The +czar gave his consent and the ukase containing it was sent to all the +governors and marshals of the nobility "for your information," and +also "for your instruction if the nobles under your administration +should express the same intention as those of the three Lithuanian +governments."</p> + +<p>The press supported the czar, and for that reason was allowed an +unusual freedom of expression. The plan was formed <span class="pagenum"><a id="page222" name="page222"></a>(p. 222)</span> to +reconstruct and strengthen the national mir. This was favored by a +number of large landowners who saw in this plan the beginning of +constitutional liberty. The czar directed that committees be appointed +to examine the scheme.</p> + +<p>There were at this time 47,000,000 serfs, of whom 21,000,000 belonged +to private landowners, 1,400,000 were domestic servants, and the rest +Crown peasants who possessed greater privileges and enjoyed some +degree of self-government. Their local affairs were administered by +the mir and an elected council with an elder as executive. They were +judged by elected courts, that is juries, either in the mir court or +in that of the volost (district).</p> + +<p>Forty-six committees composed of 1,336 land and serf-owners, assembled +to discuss the future of 22,500,000 serfs and of 120,000 owners. These +committees declared in favor of emancipation, but could not agree upon +the allowance of acreage or the indemnity to the owners. Another +committee of twelve was appointed, presided over by the czar, but +there Alexander met considerable passive opposition. The czar made a +journey through the provinces, where he appealed to the nobles, +warning them that "reforms came better from above than below." After +his return another committee superior in authority to the one existing +and composed of friends of emancipation was called. Its members, +inspired by the czar, drafted laws whereby emancipation was to proceed +at once, and stringent laws were made to prevent the free peasant from +again becoming a serf, and to make of him a proprietor upon payment of +an indemnity. On the 3d of March, 1861, the emancipation ukase was +published.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page223" name="page223"></a>(p. 223)</span> scheme, as is evident, was fraught with difficulty. A +stroke of the pen by the hand of the czar could set free millions of +serfs, but all the czar's power stopped short of endowing the serf +with the dignity and responsibility, which are the freeman's +birthright. For more than a century and a half, the moujik had been a +beast of burden, toiling as he was bid, and finding recreation only in +besotting himself with strong drink whenever he could find the means +to indulge. Mental faculties, save such as are inseparable from animal +instinct, had lain dormant; moral perception was limited between the +knout on one side, and gross superstition on the other. Could such a +being be intrusted with life and property? When the serf, brutalized +by generations of oppression, should come to understand that he was +free to do as he pleased, and that the hovel where he and his brood +were styed was his to do with as he pleased, what could he be expected +to do? Would he not seize the opportunity to indulge in his favorite +craving, and, having sold his property, swell the army of homeless +vagabonds?</p> + +<p>The mir was the only means to prevent this, and mir meant serfdom +under another name. The landowners disposed of their land, or of so +much as was required to support the peasants, not to individuals but +to the mir. To indemnify the owners, the mir could secure a loan +whereby the debt was transferred from the owner to the government, and +the mir was responsible for its payment as well as for the taxes. The +moujik, as part of the mir, was responsible to the community for his +share of the debt, and was not allowed to leave his village without a +written permission from the starost or elder. He was, therefore, +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page224" name="page224"></a>(p. 224)</span> in a worse position than before the emancipation because in +time of distress it was his lord's interest to support him, whereas +after it he had to deal with a soulless government that demanded the +taxes regardless of circumstances. The mir might succeed so long as +the peasant remained in a state of tutelage; education only could lift +him out of this,—but this means was not considered by the government.</p> + +<p>But whatever may have been Alexander's intentions, the men charged +with their execution had no sympathy with the moujik. The question +never occurred to them: How shall we raise the peasant from his +degradation? The problem before them was, how he should be made to +support the State, as he had done before. The Russian statesmen had no +conception of the truth that the wealth of a State is gauged by the +prosperity of the people.</p> + +<p>As to the serf, he did not consider that a boon had been bestowed upon +him. The soil and the hovel were his, descended to him from his +forbears! Why, then, should he pay for them? He clung to this idea +with all the stubbornness implanted by a sense of justice upon a +limited intelligence. It had been hammered into his head that the +Little Father at St. Petersburg was conferring a favor upon him, and +this was within his limited conception; but when he heard what the +favor was, the only solution which his cunning brain could devise was +that the nobles had cheated the czar, or that there had been some +juggling with the ukase. Thus grave disturbances occurred. In one +district, that of Kazan, 10,000 men rose at the call of the moujik +Petrof, who promised them the real article of liberty. Troops were +called out and a hundred peasants besides <span class="pagenum"><a id="page225" name="page225"></a>(p. 225)</span> Petrof were shot. +Similar disturbances occurred in other provinces. The poor moujik did +not know that he was saddled with a debt which neither he nor his +children could hope to pay; but he did know that he was charged with a +debt which he had not incurred.</p> + +<p>Nevertheless, the emancipation was a step forward. Under the liberal +impulse then rushing irresistibly over Russia's broad level the upper +classes clamored for reforms. They asked for the re-establishment of +the douma as the beginning of a constitutional government, but the +czar was not prepared to grant this, and he was right because under +existing circumstances the peasants would have to be +disfranchized,—and there is small choice between an autocracy and an +oligarchy.</p> + +<p>It is to be regretted that the reforms in the judicial system, +introduced by Alexander in the ukases of 1862 to 1865, have since been +rescinded. Secret examinations were displaced by open sessions of the +courts, and criminal cases were decided by juries; the police was +forbidden to examine the accused, which duty was placed into the hands +of a qualified judge. Appeals could be taken to a higher court, and +the Senate acted as a Supreme Court in the last resort. Apart from +this system was the justice of the peace who adjudged ordinary police +cases, acted as an arbitrator, and decided civil suits when the amount +involved did not exceed 500 rubles ($250). No appeal could be taken in +cases involving less than thirty rubles in civil suits, or fifteen +rubles or three days' prison in police offenses. If an appeal was +taken the case was brought, not before a higher court, but before the +collective justices of the peace <span class="pagenum"><a id="page226" name="page226"></a>(p. 226)</span> of the district, whose +verdict could be set aside only by the Senate.</p> + +<p>The Russian <i>goubernii</i>, governments, were divided into districts +(<i>ouiezdi</i>). The imperial ukase of 1864, created <i>zemstvos</i> or +district assemblies composed of representatives of the landed +proprietors or gentlemen; or rural communes or mirs, and of the towns. +These representatives were elected every three years. The assembly +appointed an executive committee which is in permanent session, but +the zemstvo assembles once a year. Its duties are strictly limited to +local affairs, such as keeping roads and bridges in repair; to watch +over education and sanitation, to report on the condition of the +harvest, and to guard against the occurrence of famine. Above the +district zemstvo is the goubernkoé zemstvo or provincial assembly, +whose members are elected from the district zemstvos. Its duties +embrace the estimate of the provincial budget, and a general +supervision over the districts.</p> + +<p>Alexander was kindly disposed and meant to do well. He showed it by +removing the barriers erected by his father between Russia and western +Europe. Foreigners in Russia were granted civil rights, and Russians +were allowed to travel abroad. The universities were relieved of +restraints and Jews who had learned a trade could settle where they +pleased. All these reforms were so many promises of a new era for +Russia.</p> + +<p>Alexander soon found out that his concessions only served to create +demands for more. The trouble began in Poland, where the news of +Nicholas' death was received with relief, if not with joy. Great hopes +were entertained <span class="pagenum"><a id="page227" name="page227"></a>(p. 227)</span> from the new czar; besides, the Europe of +1855 was very different from that of 1825: monarchs had learned the +lesson that the people possessed inalienable rights. Italy had shaken +off the encumbrance of a number of princelings,—and was the better +for it; Austria had been compelled to grant self-government to its +Hungarian subjects; why, then, should Poland despair of recovering its +independence?</p> + +<p>It was Poland's greatest misfortune that her best sons were always +divided in opinion; many of them, moreover, thought that Poland's +cause should command the sacrifices of every people. They forgot that +their country owed its downfall to itself and that, whereas people +might express their sympathy, it cannot be expected that they shall +neglect their own business for the sake of other people. Some of the +leaders expected that the czar would grant them self-government, and +Alexander might have done so after some time; but others demanded not +only independence but that Russia should restore the parts which she +had owned for so many years that they had become parts of the empire. +The czar dared not grant such a request, because it would have +produced a revolution in Russia, besides a war with Austria and +Prussia, since those powers owned part of Poland. He was, however, +willing to grant important concessions and did so. In February 1863, +an insurrection broke out, and Russian troops were dispatched to +subdue it. The Russians acted with great cruelty, so that England, +France, and Austria protested on the 17th of June. Russia, knowing +that Prussia would come to her assistance paid no attention, and in +1866, Russian Poland <span class="pagenum"><a id="page228" name="page228"></a>(p. 228)</span> became a part of Russia. The Russian +language displaced the Polish, and Poland is no longer even a name; it +is a memory and a warning,—nothing more.</p> + +<p>Quite different was Alexander's treatment of Finland. In 1863, he +convoked the Diet of that grand dukedom, where nobility and people +appreciated the degree of liberty which they enjoyed. The government +did not interfere with the national language or religion, but took +measures that neither should spread in Russia.</p> + +<p>Alexander's concessions raised the expectation of a constitution among +those who knew what the word implies, including the students at the +universities. These institutions were closed. The provincial zemstvos +exceeded their authority. That of Tver demanded the convocation of the +three Estates; that at Toula discussed a national assembly. Was it +Alexander or his court and ministers who bore the responsibility for +the suppressive means that were employed? It may be that the attempts +upon his life, by Karakozof in 1866, and by the Pole Berezofski at +Paris in 1867, embittered him. But his kindly feeling and love for his +people, taken in conjunction with a later event, warrant the belief +that he was ignorant.</p> + + + + +<h3>XXV—GREAT EVENTS DURING ALEXANDER'S REIGN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page229" name="page229"></a>(p. 229)</span></h3> + +<h5>NIHILISM.</h5> + + +<p>Prussia's behavior during the Polish insurrection brought her into a +close friendship with Russia. The result was seen when Austria and +Prussia, in 1864, invaded the German provinces of Denmark, when Russia +prevented intervention, and Denmark lost the two provinces by the +Treaty of Vienna, October 30, 1864. Soon after Prussia and Austria +quarreled about the spoils. The countries of South Germany supported +Austria. War began on June 18, 1866, and little over two months later, +on August 23, 1866, it ended by the Peace of Prague, which gave to +Prussia Hanover, Schleswig-Holstein, Hesse, Nassau, and the city of +Frankfort. Prussia did not annex Wurtemburg in compliment to the czar, +who was related to its king by marriage.</p> + +<p>If Russia looked carelessly upon Prussia's growth, not so Napoleon III +of France. He saw in it a threat, and to offset Prussia's increase of +power, tried to secure other territory. It was evident that nothing +but a pretext was needed to bring on war. It was found, and Napoleon +declared war on July 15, 1870. Once again it was Alexander who +protected Prussia on the east, by threatening Austria which would +gladly have seized the opportunity to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page230" name="page230"></a>(p. 230)</span> avenge 1866. As a +consequence France had to fight the whole of Germany; and Russia +seized the opportunity for repudiating the treaty of Paris of 1856, +which forbade the construction of arsenals on the coast of the Black +Sea and did not permit any war vessels in it. None of the powers felt +any inclination to fight Russia single-handed, but Prussia proposed a +conference, which was held at London. The result was that Russia was +left free in the Black Sea, but the sultan has the right to close the +Dardanelles to warships.</p> + +<p>On January 18, 1871, the King of Prussia became German Emperor, and in +the following year the Emperor of Russia, the Emperor of Austria, and +the German Emperor met at Vienna, with the result that an alliance was +concluded among the three powers.</p> + +<p>In 1867 Russia resolved to dispose of its possessions on the western +hemisphere by selling Alaska, a territory covering 590,884 square +miles, to the United States. In the same year a Slavophil Congress was +held at Moscow with the czar's approval. The object was said to be to +unite all the nations of Slav origin by a bond of friendship; but the +real purpose was to bring them under the rule of the czar. This was +apparent when it was resolved to send emissaries among the Slavs under +Turkish rule. They met with encouragement in Montenegro, Bulgaria, +Bosnia, and Herzegovina. General Ignatieff, the Russian ambassador at +Constantinople, thought that this might be the means to bring about +the longed-for annexation of the old Czargrad. He worked upon the +Turkish subjects belonging to the Greek Church, but showed his hand +when, under his decision, the Bulgarians were <span class="pagenum"><a id="page231" name="page231"></a>(p. 231)</span> released from +the authority of the Patriarch of Constantinople. In 1875, the +Bulgarian Christians rose against the Turkish tax-farmers. The revolt +was fanned by the Russian emissaries, and it spread to Servia and +Montenegro. Ignatieff did not think that the time was ripe and +interfered; but he threatened the Sultan with European intervention +and Abdul Aziz granted the insurgents the privileges enjoyed by the +Christians in Turkey.</p> + +<p>Austria looked with apprehension upon the increasing influence of +Russia in Turkey, and suggested drastic reforms in a note addressed to +the powers on December 30, 1875. It was approved and presented to the +sultan by the five great European powers. Abdul Aziz quietly accepted +it. This was not what the Russian Slavophils expected, and they +incited the Servians to revolt. A religious insurrection followed +which was put down by the Turks with such cruelty that it aroused +universal indignation in Europe, especially in Russia. In +Constantinople the Turks were indignant at the sultan's evident fear +of Ignatieff. The situation became so alarming that Great Britain +assembled a fleet in Besika Bay. The triple alliance, Russia, Austria +and Prussia, demanded of the sultan an armistice and the execution of +reforms under foreign supervision. The situation changed by a +revolution in Turkey on May 29, 1876, when Abdul Aziz was assassinated +and succeeded by his nephew Murad V.</p> + +<p>Russia felt that war was inevitable and approached Austria with +proposals to take joint action. The reply was that Austria could not +permit the creation of a Slav state on the frontier and that, if any +changes were made in <span class="pagenum"><a id="page232" name="page232"></a>(p. 232)</span> the Balkans, Austria must receive +compensation. This was admitted by Russia. A number of Russian +officers took service in Servia, among them General Chernaiev, who had +gained distinction in Central Asia. Montenegro declared war against +Turkey on July 2, 1876.</p> + +<p>On the 31st of August, of the same year, Sultan Murad V was deposed, +and his half-brother became sultan as Abdul Hamid II. Meanwhile the +Turks were victorious, and on September, 17, the Servians asked for an +armistice.</p> + +<p>The reports of Turkish atrocities aroused great indignation in Great +Britain; its government was forced to join the other great powers in a +note to the sultan demanding reforms. Abdul Hamid made vague promises +but when the Servians, trusting to intervention, again took up arms, +they were badly defeated and a great number of Russian officers were +killed. The czar was forced to interfere. On October 31, he demanded +an armistice of six weeks, to which Abdul Hamid replied that he would +make it six months. This was declined because it would keep the +Servians too long in suspense, and the war continued. In the beginning +of November Chernaiev admitted that the Slav cause was lost unless +foreign help came.</p> + +<p>Alexander was really concerned in seeking a peaceable solution, but +his high officers were equally earnest in preventing it. Ignatieff, at +Constantinople, was especially active with every means at his +disposal. Alexander suggested a European conference but before it +assembled he declared publicly at Moscow (Nov. 10), that, anxious as +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page233" name="page233"></a>(p. 233)</span> he was to avoid the shedding of Russian blood, he would act +alone to support his brethren in race and religion unless the +conference brought relief.</p> + +<p>The representatives of the powers met at Constantinople on the 5th of +December, 1876. The sultan, a man of rare ability and cunning, knew +that Turkey's disintegration was discussed in its own capital. He did +not object, but made one of the reform party his Grand Vizier, and +astonished the world by proclaiming a constitution on December 25.</p> + +<p>The conference concluded its deliberations, and presented its +conclusions to the sultan who agreed to submit them to the National +Assembly, which was to meet in March, 1877. Abdul Hamid was wise. He +made the first legislature Turkey ever had,—and he had firmly +resolved that it should also be the last,—responsible for whatever +might happen. The session was brief, but long enough to refuse the +conditions imposed by the powers.</p> + +<p>Alexander demanded that the sultan make peace with Montenegro which +was declined. On the 24th of April the czar declared war. England +protested against Russia's independent action, but 250,000 men crossed +the Turkish frontier. The principal incident was the siege and fall of +Plevna (July 20—Dec. 10, 1877), under Osman Pasha. The surrender of +this brave Turk alarmed England, which, however, did not grant +Turkey's appeal for intervention. It was at the battle of Senova, Jan. +9, 1878, when he captured 27,000 prisoners and 43 Krupp guns, that +Skobelef won fame. On January 23, Constantinople was at the czar's +mercy.</p> + +<p>But <span class="pagenum"><a id="page234" name="page234"></a>(p. 234)</span> this awoke England. On February 13, the British fleet +passed through the Dardanelles without obtaining the sultan's consent, +and thereby ruined Russia's schemes. In vain did its government +complain of the violation of the Treaty of Paris; before the czar +could make good his threat that he would occupy Constantinople,—the +object of the Russian's most fervid hope,—a fleet of British +ironclads prevented its consummation.</p> + +<p>Peace negotiations were opened at San Stefano, when Russia imposed +exaggerated demands which the cunning sultan hastened to grant, +convinced that the other powers would prevent their execution. He was +right. Great Britain, Austria, and Turkey entered into an alliance. +England sent for Indian troops to occupy Malta, and called out the +reserves. The war had cost Russia $600,000,000 and 90,000 men, and she +was not in a condition to fight the three powers. Thus, for the second +time, Czargrad slipped out of Russia's clutches, and each time she +owed the disappointment to Great Britain.</p> + +<p>The Balkan question was settled at the Congress at Berlin which opened +on June 13, 1878, and finished its sessions a month later. Turkey +ceded to Russia a part of Bessarabia, and in Asia, Kars, Ardahan, and +Batoum. This ending of the war, so different from what was expected by +the Slavophils, caused great dissatisfaction in Russia, and the czar +dissolved all Slavophil committees. This gained him the dislike of the +high officers and of the tchinovnik.</p> + +<p>The absurd and dangerous doctrine of nihilism, that is, the +destruction of everything that constitutes society, penetrated into +Russia by way of Germany. At first it was <span class="pagenum"><a id="page235" name="page235"></a>(p. 235)</span> nothing but a +theory, fascinating for young and inexperienced people such as +students of the universities who, unless properly guided, are apt to +adopt any idea that appeals to the generous sentiments of youth. In +1864, an exile named Bakunin escaped from Siberia, and made his way to +London where he secured employment on the <i>Kolokol</i> or "Bell," a +revolutionary paper published in Russia which was smuggled over the +frontier and scattered broadcast in the czar's domains. Under +Bakunin's influence this paper became hostile to society, and preached +nihilism. In 1869, a Congress of Nihilists was held at Basel, +Switzerland; Bakunin proposed to create an International Committee of +active workers.</p> + +<p>Soon unmistakable signs of trouble appeared in Russia, but the +government was on the alert and took strong means of suppression. +Nicholas I, the man with the iron will, had sent an average number of +9,000 persons annually to Siberia; this number under Alexander the +Liberator increased to from 16,000 to 20,000. Bakunin urged his +followers to "go among the people," and a host of young persons, male +and female, many of them belonging to the wealthy classes, adopted the +life of the moujik in the villages. But the Russian peasant possesses +a degree of cunning which shows his dormant intelligence, and +suspected the motives of those who said they wanted to benefit him, +and this, added to his real affection for the czar, rendered the +attempt of the nihilists a failure. The Russian peasant dreads a +change in his condition, because experience has taught him that it +will end to his disadvantage. In 1876 there were still 2,000,000 +peasants who preferred serfdom.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page236" name="page236"></a>(p. 236)</span> Turkish war, when the government was occupied elsewhere, +afforded an opportunity which was not neglected by the nihilists. On a +July night of the year 1877, fifteen young men met in the forest near +Litepsk, and formed a conspiracy against all existing institutions. +Two papers, <i>The Popular Will</i> and <i>The Black Partition</i> advised +assassination as the means to gain their object. We may judge of +conditions in Russia from knowing that many good and wealthy people +made contributions, well aware that arrest and punishment would follow +if the secret police should hear of it. In October, 1877, 253 +nihilists were arrested, and 160 were convicted at the trial. In +February, 1878, General Trepof, Governor of St. Petersburg was openly +accused in the papers of gross cruelty toward a prisoner, and Vera +Zazulich, a young woman, sought to kill him. She was arrested, +tried,—and acquitted, much to the disgust of the authorities who made +every effort to re-arrest her. Then began a reign of terror. Officials +were condemned to death by an "Executive Committee," composed of +members whose names were unknown. The police did not know whom to +suspect, and therefore suspected everybody, and no one was safe. Often +the condemned officer was warned of his doom by letter or paper, but +the messenger could not be found. In April, the president of the Kief +University was dangerously wounded, and a police officer was stabbed +in public. In August, General Mezensof, Chief of the dreaded Secret +Police, was killed, and when the government abolished trial by jury in +favor of a military court, it seemed as if the public took the part of +the terrorists. These men grew bolder. On the 22d <span class="pagenum"><a id="page237" name="page237"></a>(p. 237)</span> of +February, 1878, Prince Krapotkine, the Governor of Kharkof, was shot, +and his death sentence was found posted in many cities. On the +following 7th of March, Colonel Knoop of the Odessa police, was +killed, and as a climax, on the 14th of April a school-teacher named +Solovief fired a pistol at the czar. Not satisfied with assassination, +the terrorists resorted to incendiarism at Moscow, Nishni Novgorod, +and other cities, and there were riots at Rostof. In April, 1878, the +government proclaimed martial law, and the most renowned generals, +Melikof, Gourko, Todleben, and others were appointed governors with +unlimited authority. At St. Petersburg the <i>dvorniks</i> or house +janitors were directed to spy upon the residents and to report their +movements to the secret police. Executions, imprisonment, and exile +multiplied until it seemed as if the government wished to terrify the +terrorists.</p> + +<p>Still the situation went from bad to worse. On December 1, 1879, as +the imperial train was entering Moscow, it was wrecked by a mine. +Alexander escaped because he had traveled in an earlier section. Three +days later the "Executive Committee" issued a proclamation excusing +the attempt and announcing that the czar had been condemned to death. +On February 17, 1880, an explosion of dynamite in the guard room of +the Winter Palace, just beneath the imperial dining-room, killed and +maimed a large number of soldiers, but the imperial family escaped by +a hair's breadth, as the czar had not entered the room. On the 24th of +the same month Louis Melikof was placed in charge of the city of St. +Petersburg, and eight days later there was an attempt upon his life. +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page238" name="page238"></a>(p. 238)</span> There was a panic in the capital, when a nihilist +proclamation announced that these attempts would cease, provided the +czar would renounce his autocracy and "leave the task of establishing +social reforms to an assembly representing the entire Russian people."</p> + +<p>Whatever may have been his motive, Melikof urged the czar to try what +conciliation would effect. Upon his advice, a large number of exiles +in Siberia were pardoned, and persons imprisoned for political +offenses were released. About 2,000 students expelled from the +universities were readmitted, and in several cases the death sentence +pronounced against nihilists was commuted. Only two men out of the +sixteen convicted of the attempt to blow up the Winter Palace, were +executed. The effect of this new policy was so satisfactory, that on +the 18th of August, 1880, the czar revoked the ukase of February 24, +and Melikof was appointed as Minister of the Interior. He advised the +czar to grant a constitution, and in February 1881, placed before +Alexander a plan to effect this important change gradually. It was +discussed in the Council of State. The majority approved, but a bitter +opposition was manifested by the other members. The czar himself was +in favor of it, but the persons with whom he came into daily contact +caused him to hesitate. He told Melikof that he would give his final +decision on March 12.</p> + +<p>On that day he had not made up his mind, but on the 13th, he ordered +that Melikof's scheme should become a law, and that it be published in +the Official Gazette. That afternoon, as he was returning from his +usual drive, and his carriage was passing between the Catherine Canal +and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page239" name="page239"></a>(p. 239)</span> Michael's Garden, a bomb was thrown under his carriage +and exploded, killing or wounding a number of the guard, but Alexander +was unhurt. He was hurrying to assist the wounded, when another bomb +exploded near him and he was dreadfully mangled. He regained +consciousness for a moment while his attendants were bearing him to +the palace, but died at 3.30 <span class="smcap">P.M.</span>, without having spoken a word.</p> + +<p>A man named Rissakof, said to be a nihilist, was arrested for throwing +the bomb; but there were ugly rumors that the assassination was +committed under the direction of parties interested in maintaining an +autocratic government at all risks. Owing to the secret proceedings in +Russian courts, the murder of Alexander the Liberator still remains a +mystery.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page240" name="page240"></a>(p. 240)</span> +<a id="img015" name="img015"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img015.jpg" width="400" height="595" alt="Alexander III" title="Alexander III"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Alexander III</p> + + + + +<h2>XXVI—ALEXANDER III, THE PEASANTS' FRIEND. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page241" name="page241"></a>(p. 241)</span></h2> + + +<p>The atrocious death of The Liberator gave the throne to his son, who +succeeded as Alexander III. The new czar was thirty-six years old. +Nicholas, the eldest son of Alexander II, had died of consumption in +1865, and, since he had been the heir, his younger brother had not +received any special training. His principal tutor had been +Pobiédonostzeff, a man who believed in autocracy. He had imbued his +pupil with a deeply religious feeling, and imparted to him a thorough +knowledge of Russia's history. Alexander III was of powerful build and +possessed unusual strength. He was loyal to his word, and tenacious in +his likes and dislikes. Married to Princess Dagmar of Denmark, he was +a model husband and father. His education made him a firm believer in +autocracy.</p> + +<p>The sudden and tragic death of his father moved him so deeply that he +gave orders that the last wishes of the late czar should be respected. +"Change nothing in my father's orders;" he said to Melikof; "they are +his last will and testament." He issued two proclamations; in the +first he announced that he would strengthen the bond with Poland and +Finland, and thus gained the support of the Slavophils; and in the +second, he reminded the peasants of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page242" name="page242"></a>(p. 242)</span> the freedom given to +them by his father, and ordered them to swear allegiance to himself +and his heir. Six men and a woman implicated in the murder of the late +czar were arrested, tried, condemned to death, and, with the exception +of the woman, they were executed on April 15. The czar appointed his +former tutor as Procurator of the Holy Synod. Pobiédonostzeff +persuaded his pupil that this was not the time to make concessions. On +the 11th of May, 1881, Alexander issued a proclamation in which he +declared his intention to maintain the absolute power. Melikof +resigned as Minister of the Interior and was replaced by Ignatieff, +the former Russian Minister at Constantinople.</p> + +<p>Shortly after his succession to the throne, Alexander made a journey +to Moscow, and was everywhere received with unmistakable tokens of +loyalty and affection. This confirmed his opinion that the great bulk +of the population was satisfied with the form of government, and +strengthened his determination to defend it.</p> + +<p>In 1881, an anti-semitic movement was felt in Germany; that is, an +outburst of hatred for the Jews broke out, which spread to Russia. It +is not generally known that of all the Jews in the world, four fifths +live in Russia in the southwest, in an area of 356,681 square miles. +This is sometimes mentioned as the Jewish territory. Few of these +people engage in agriculture; they are sometimes mechanics, but more +often peddlers, storekeepers, bankers and moneylenders. The principal +objection to them was that they succeed where others fail. In May, +1881, there were anti-Jewish riots at Kief and other places. +Pobiédonostzeff's motto was, "One Russia, One <span class="pagenum"><a id="page243" name="page243"></a>(p. 243)</span> Religion, One +Czar;" prompted by him, Alexander did not take any energetic measures +to suppress the disorder, for he, too, disliked to see in Russia a +people differing in religion, language, and outward appearance. +Ignatieff began a system of persecution by removing the Jews who had +profited by the late czar's permission to settle anywhere, and when +the act which recalled the Middle Ages was hotly condemned by the +foreign press, even the Slavophils said that Ignatieff had gone too +far. The persecution died out until 1884, when the Jews were deprived +of their civil rights, and an attempt was made to compel them to enter +the Greek Church. But the Jew is steadfast under persecution, and the +only result was that some of them heartily joined the nihilists.</p> + +<p>The public condemnation which followed these acts, induced Ignatieff +to advise the czar to adopt Melikof's scheme of a constitution. +Alexander did not understand this change of views and when de Giers +was appointed Minister of Foreign Affairs, Ignatieff resigned. He was +succeeded by D. Tolstoï.</p> + +<p>Misunderstandings and the clashing of interests were dissolving the +triple alliance of Russia, Austria, and Germany. This was apparent in +the Balkan States which had been formed after the last Russo-Turkish +war. Charles I, King of Roumania, was a German prince who mistrusted +Russia's schemes. In March, 1882, Prince Milan Obrenovitch of Servia +assumed the title of king, and the czar offered no objection. The +ruler of Bulgaria was Alexander of Battenberg who was a relative of +the czar and had served in the Russian army, which may have been the +reason of his appointment. The Russian Minister <span class="pagenum"><a id="page244" name="page244"></a>(p. 244)</span> at his court +was evidently of the opinion that his word, as representative of the +czar, was law, and when he found out that his orders were set at +naught, he withdrew from his post, whereupon the Russian officers +serving in the Bulgarian army, were dismissed. This gave grave offense +at St. Petersburg, but the affair was arranged, and the Russian +Minister returned. In September, 1885, there was a revolution in +Sofia, the capital of Eastern Roumelia, when the crown was offered to +Alexander of Battenberg, who accepted. He hastened to inform the czar, +who was too angry to pay any attention to letters or telegrams.</p> + +<p>Bulgaria and Eastern Roumelia, although united under one prince, sent +deputations to St. Petersburg to appease the czar, but were informed +that their future would be decided by the great powers. Soon after +Servia declared war against Bulgaria; after a few unimportant +skirmishes, they were driven back by Prince Alexander, who would have +captured the capital Belgrad, if he had not been stopped by Austria's +intervention. Alexander, after another fruitless attempt to mollify +the czar, applied to the sultan, who appointed him as Governor-general +over Eastern Roumelia for five years. The czar protested and invited +the powers to a conference which was held at Constantinople on April +5, 1886. To the infinite disgust of the czar, the dispute was decided +in favor of Prince Alexander.</p> + +<p>Russia, however, had a pro-Russian party in Bulgaria. On August 21, +1886, Prince Alexander was kidnaped and carried across the Danube, +after being compelled to abdicate. At Lemberg, in Austrian territory +he was set free. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page245" name="page245"></a>(p. 245)</span> The Bulgarians rallied under the President +of the National Assembly and forced the pro-Russians to flee, after +which Prince Alexander returned on the 3d of September. Once more he +made an attempt to pacify the czar, but when his telegram remained +unanswered, he abdicated three days later, rather than involve the +country in a war with Russia. He left on the same day, to the sorrow +of the people.</p> + +<p>The czar was angry. He knew that Austria would not have dared oppose +him unless assured of the support of Germany. The feeling in Russia +grew more bitter when the election in Bulgaria showed a total defeat +of the pro-Russian party, and the crown was offered to Prince Waldemar +of Denmark, who declined at the instance of the czar. The Bulgarians +then made an offer to Prince Ferdinand of Saxe-Coburg, who accepted, +and in August made his formal entry in Tirnova. Alexander once more +protested to the powers, but it passed unheeded and he urged the +sultan to expel Ferdinand. Abdul Hamid declined with thanks, +preferring to have as neighbor a small independent country to Russia. +Alexander then demanded payment of the war indemnity due since the +Treaty of San Stefano, but could obtain nothing except a profusion of +excuses and apologies. Soon after the sultan had trouble in Armenia, +which was Russia's latest resort to arouse public opinion against the +Turk.</p> + +<p>This is the age of colossal enterprises and combinations in every +direction, in politics as well as in other branches of human activity. +In Russia Slavophilism, gave way to Panslavism, that is, the scheme to +unite all Slav <span class="pagenum"><a id="page246" name="page246"></a>(p. 246)</span> nations. Germany was quick to respond with +Pan Germanism, that is, to bring all German-speaking nations under one +scepter. The czar, obeying this impulse, made every effort to convert +the Baltic provinces,—which Germany called the German +Provinces,—into Slavs by making the Russian language the only +language that was taught in the schools; and Germany retaliated in the +Polish provinces. Under these circumstances friendship ceased. Russia +established a protective tariff, which was a rude blow to Germany's +commerce; and that country replied by refusing to loan Russia any more +money. The czar's government applied to France which responded with +unexpected generosity. From that time Russia's internal improvements +have been made with French capital.</p> + +<p>Prudent as he was, Alexander allowed his anger and dislike to master +him, when Prince Alexander of Battenberg was accepted as suitor to a +daughter of Queen Victoria. Troops were hurried from the Caucasus into +Poland, but Germany averted war by having the match broken off. When +the present German emperor, William II, succeeded to the throne, he +attempted to make friends with the czar by dismissing Prince Bismarck, +in 1890, but Alexander could neither forgive nor forget. It was +chiefly owing to this that Russia and France drew closer together +until it ended in an alliance.</p> + +<p>Strong, self-willed, and masterful, Alexander did love his people in +his own way. In January, 1884, he ordered the poll-tax to be +abolished, and thereby relieved the peasants of a heavy burden; he +also compelled the landowners to sell to their former serfs the land +cultivated by <span class="pagenum"><a id="page247" name="page247"></a>(p. 247)</span> them. Since the price was payable in +installments and the owners needed the money, the government assumed +the position of creditor, but Alexander reduced the total indebtedness +by 12,000,000 rubles, and granted 5,000,000 rubles for the relief of +overburdened villages. He calculated that the land would be paid for +in 1930, when the title will be vested in the mir,—unless one of his +successors should please to appropriate the past payments for other +purposes.</p> + +<p>In the black earth belt the allotments had been according to the needs +of the population, but the increase among the people rendered them too +small and several severe famines followed. The government tried to +induce the surplus population to emigrate to Siberia, but the Russian +peasant lacks education and has been held in tutelage so long that he +is not fit for the life of a pioneer settler. Transportation +facilities increased by the aid of French capital, and added to the +prosperity of merchants and speculators, but did not help the moujik +who did not know how to profit by them.</p> + +<p>Alexander, as autocrat of all the Russias, did not suffer any +authority but his own. The zemstvos, volosts, and mirs, were all +placed under officials appointed by him. Every shadow of +self-government was destroyed. This demanded a reorganization of the +army, which was increased by 900,000 men. The reserves were called out +once a year, and drilled as in actual war. Strategic railways were +built for the speedy transportation of troops. Coast defenses were +constructed and the navy was increased. In 1884, Batoum was closed as +a port and converted into a naval base, and when England protested, +claiming <span class="pagenum"><a id="page248" name="page248"></a>(p. 248)</span> that this was in violation of the Treaty of +Berlin,—as it was,—Russia, referring to the changes in the Balkan, +inquired if the duty of observing the treaties was reserved +exclusively for Russia.</p> + +<p>Alexander's reign was especially discouraging for the Poles who still +hoped for the revival of their country. Poles were made into Russians; +but Panslavism demanded that the German should be banished. In 1887, +Alexander ordered that, when a foreign landowner in Poland died, his +estate must be sold unless his heirs had been residents of Poland +before this order was published. Germany, suffering from +Pan-Germanism, collected several thousand Russian Poles who had +settled in Germany, and put them across the frontier. Russia replied +by making a law in the Baltic provinces that nothing but Russian could +be taught in any school, and that no more Lutheran churches could be +built without the permission of the Holy Synod.</p> + +<p>Then came Finland's turn. In 1890, Russian money, Russian stamps, and +worse than that, Russian taxes were introduced. There were loud +protests, which received courteous answers, but the process continued. +In 1891, the Finnish Committee at St. Petersburg, which had directed +the affairs of Finland, was abolished, and Russian censorship +abolished the free press. The Russian language was made obligatory, +and the Finns who could afford it emigrated to the United States and +settled in the northwest.</p> + +<p>In 1890, Alexander ordered the construction of the Trans-Siberian +railway, of which more will be said in the chapter on Asiatic Russia.</p> + + +<p>All <span class="pagenum"><a id="page249" name="page249"></a>(p. 249)</span> these years Alexander had battled with nihilism and +revolution. His policy neither gave nor asked for quarter. In May, +1888, an army officer named Timovief made an attempt upon the czar's +life. On October 29th of the same year, as he was traveling in +southern Russia an accident occurred in which twenty-one were killed +and many injured; it was ascribed to nihilists, but may have been +caused by defects. Be that as it may, Alexander never recovered from +the shock. In March, 1890, another plot against his life was +discovered. In November, 1891, the secret police came on the scent of +a conspiracy at Moscow, and in April, 1894, they learned of one at St. +Petersburg. In constant fear of assassination, Alexander resided at +Gatschina, twenty-five miles south of St. Petersburg, as in an armed +fortress. The never-ceasing tension wore out the strong man. He caught +cold and suffering from inflammation of the kidneys he went south, but +experienced no relief. He died on the 1st of November, 1894.</p> + +<p>In his private life he was essentially a good man; as czar, he acted +according to his convictions. He gave much thought to the welfare of +the peasants and as such deserved the surname of The Peasants' Friend.</p> + + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page250" name="page250"></a>(p. 250)</span> +<a id="img016" name="img016"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img016.jpg" width="400" height="593" alt="Nicholas II" title="Nicholas II"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Nicholas II</p> + + + + +<h3>XXVII—RUSSIA UNDER THE PRESENT CZAR. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page251" name="page251"></a>(p. 251)</span></h3> + +<h5>NICHOLAS II.</h5> + + +<p>"Neglect nothing that can make my son truly a man!" This was the +instruction given by Alexander to the tutors of his son. Consequently, +Nicholas in his youth was allowed to indulge in manly exercises and +sports, while special tutors taught him mathematics, natural +philosophy, history, political economy, English, French, and German, +besides his native language. Destined for the throne, he began his +military career at the age of thirteen as hetman of the Cossacks, and +passed successively through the different grades. In 1889, at the age +of twenty-one, he was appointed president of a committee to prepare +plans for the Trans-Siberian railway, and the following year he made a +tour in the Far East, visiting China and Japan. In the last-named +country he was attacked and wounded by a police officer who had been +brooding over the wrongs which his country had suffered at the hands +of Russia. Nicholas recovered and proceeded to Vladivostok, where he +initiated the building of the great continental line. He returned to +St. Petersburg by way of Siberia and Moscow, and was the first czar +who had ever visited his Asiatic empire.</p> + +<p>Born on May 18, 1868, he was twenty-six years old when <span class="pagenum"><a id="page252" name="page252"></a>(p. 252)</span> he +was called to the throne. He announced that he would "promote the +progress and peaceful glory of our beloved Russia, and the happiness +of all our faithful subjects." On the 26th of November, 1894, the czar +married Princess Alice of Hesse-Darmstadt, the granddaughter of Queen +Victoria, who, on entering the Greek Church, received the name of +Alexandra Feodorofna. The czar retained his father's ministers, except +that Prince Khilkof, who had learned practical railroading in the +United States, was appointed Minister of Public Works. Pobiédonostzeff +continued as Procurator of the Holy Synod.</p> + +<p>Nicholas showed greater leniency toward Poland and Finland than his +father had done. He revoked several of his father's ukases and seemed +to be willing to treat them fairly. Finland's forests are a source of +great prosperity and the Russian officials have long been anxious to +secure a share. When the Secretary of State for Finland resigned, +General Kuropatkin became Minister of War, and he wished to introduce +Russia's military system. General Bobrikof, a brusque and haughty man, +was appointed Governor-general with instructions to proceed with the +conversion of the Finns into Slavs. He convoked an extraordinary +session of the Diet, January 24, 1899, and submitted Kuropatkin's +scheme, with a strong hint that it must pass. The Diet ignored the +hint and rejected the scheme, whereupon Bobrikof ignored the Diet and +published it as a law to go into effect in 1903. An imperial ukase of +February 15, 1899, reorganized the Diet according to a plan drawn up +by Pobiédonostzeff. Bobrikof increased the rigor of the press +censorship, but <span class="pagenum"><a id="page253" name="page253"></a>(p. 253)</span> the Finns remained within the law. A +petition was circulated which in ten days secured 500,000 signatures, +and a delegation was sent to St. Petersburg to present it. The +delegation was not admitted.</p> + +<p>In January, 1895, the czar received a deputation of all classes of his +subjects who hinted that the zemstvos might be used as the germ of a +constitutional government. He replied that he believed in autocracy +and that he intended to maintain it as his predecessors had done. On +the 26th of May, 1896, he was crowned at Moscow with more than usual +splendor, and in the same year he and the czarina made a tour through +Europe. After visiting the German Emperor and Queen Victoria, they +went to Paris where the czar, after reviewing 100,000 soldiers +declared that the Empire and the Republic were united in indissoluble +friendship. The visit was returned by the President of the French +Republic, M. Faure, in August, 1897. On this occasion the world +received notice that an alliance existed between the two powers, and +that, if one of them was attacked by more than one power, the other +would assist with the whole of its military and naval strength, and +peace could be concluded only in concert between the allies.</p> + +<p>Two great reforms are noticeable under the present reign. The sale of +spirits has greatly decreased since the government took the monopoly +of the manufacture and sale of liquor. The French loans made the +establishment of the gold standard possible and speculation in Russian +paper money ceased.</p> + +<p>The completion of the Trans-Siberian Railway aroused great expectation +for the future of Russia's commerce. The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page254" name="page254"></a>(p. 254)</span> war with Japan has +prevented the possibility of estimating the effect it will have upon +oceanic trade. But Russia's manufactures have had a wonderful +increase; its effect is shown in the population of the cities. In +1870, Russia contained only six cities with a population of over +100,000; their number was doubled in 1897. Warsaw, the old capital of +Poland, had 243,000 inhabitants in 1865; in 1897, they had increased +to 615,000. Lotz, also in Poland, rose from 12,000 to 315,000. This +cannot fail to exert a powerful influence upon the future of the +empire; first, on account of the creation of a middle class which, +even at this early day, numbers nine per cent of the population; and +next, because the mechanics and factory hands are recruited from among +the peasants, who thus are brought into daily contact with more +intelligent people, and acquire new ideas and new necessities. The +official class is bitterly opposed to this new departure, because it +foreshadows the day when the drag upon Russia will be cast off.</p> + +<p>Nicholas seems to have reversed his father's policy in the Balkan +States. He also acted in concert with Europe in 1896, when trouble +arose between Turkey and Greece. It began in Crete, where Turk and +Christian could not agree. Stories of massacres infuriated the Greeks +and the king had to choose between a revolution and a declaration of +war. In April, 1897, an army of 80,000 men under Prince George crossed +into Thessaly, but was driven back by a Turkish army of 150,000 men. +Prince George had invaded Crete in February, but the powers compelled +him to evacuate the island. The czar interceded with the sultan, and +the absurd war was ended.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page255" name="page255"></a>(p. 255)</span> Slavophils, after their failure in the Balkan provinces +had excited the Armenians in the provinces near the Russian Caucasus. +They attacked the Kurds, a nomadic tribe of Mussulmans, when the Turks +took the side of their co-religionists and treated the Armenians with +no soft hand. The Panslavists demanded autonomy for Armenia, but this +did not suit Prince Lobanof, who had succeeded de Giers as Minister of +Foreign Affairs, because he feared trouble in the Caucasus. In 1895, +Russia, France, and England, presented a note to the sultan, +suggesting the appointment of a high commissioner, the abolition of +torture, and reforms in taxation. Turkey agreed, but Shakir Pasha, the +high commissioner, failed to restore order and the disorder threatened +to become a revolt. Even in Constantinople a condition of anarchy +prevailed.</p> + +<p>The atrocities committed by the Turks aroused indignation everywhere, +when the Armenians seized the Ottoman Bank, but the conspirators were +forced to flee from the building and to seek refuge on an English +yacht. The Turks were furious and killed more than 5,000 Armenians. +Again the powers remonstrated; but at this time it began to dawn upon +the public that the Armenians were a least quite as much to blame as +the Turks, and the interest subsided. Russia had discovered that the +Armenians are undesirable citizens, and sent back some 40,000 of them +who had settled in the Russian Caucasus. Germany, intent upon securing +concessions from Turkey, left the sultan a free hand; meanwhile the +British public was engrossed by the Boer war, and the Armenians, +seeing that they were left to their own devices, subsided.</p> + +<p>The <span class="pagenum"><a id="page256" name="page256"></a>(p. 256)</span> civilized world was startled when, on August 24, 1898, +Russia issued a note to the powers, declaring that "military and naval +budgets attack public prosperity at its very source, and divert +national energies from useful aims," and suggesting a conference to +discuss the subject of displacing war by an International Court.</p> + +<p>The note received generous applause, especially in the United States +and Great Britain, the two foremost nations devoted to the arts of +peace. The several governments agreed to participate in the proposed +conference. The place selected was The Hague, the capital of the +Netherlands, where the sessions opened on May 18, 1899.</p> + +<p>Of all the great powers, the United States was the only one +unreservedly in favor of an arrangement whereby war would be +prevented. Most of the other powers looked upon an International Court +as visionary, and so far as the ostensible purpose is concerned, the +conference was a failure. Still, it bore fruit in defining and adding +strength to international law. Among its most important results is the +clause that "When a conflict seems imminent, one or several powers +shall have the right to offer mediation, and its exercise shall not be +regarded as an unfriendly act." A permanent Court of Arbitration was +established at The Hague. It is composed of judges selected from a +list on which every country is represented. On the 29th of July, the +delegates of sixteen nations signed the protocol embodying the +conclusions; it was afterwards signed by sixteen more. It remained, +however, with the United States, to give vitality to an institution +which was looked upon with ill favor by many governments.</p> + +<p>Although <span class="pagenum"><a id="page257" name="page257"></a>(p. 257)</span> the reign of terror from the nihilists has passed, +political murder is still rampant in Russia, and recent events in the +Far East have caused a renewal of the agitation for reforms. In 1904, +the Governor-general of Finland was assassinated, and soon afterwards, +the hated and dreaded Minister of the Interior de Plehve shared that +fate. His successor seems to be anxious to grant greater liberties to +the people. The united action of the zemstvos, and the final issue of +the war in the Far East, may have important results. Nicholas II, amid +all his perplexities, was made glad by the birth of a son and heir, +who received the name of Alexis.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page258" name="page258"></a>(p. 258)</span> +<a id="img017" name="img017"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<a href="images/img017bg.jpg"> +<img src="images/img017.jpg" width="500" height="313" alt="Map" title="Map"></a> +</div> + + + + +<h2>XXVIII—THE ORIGIN AND GROWTH OF THE ASIATIC EMPIRE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page259" name="page259"></a>(p. 259)</span></h2> + + +<p>A close study of the history of Asiatic Russia reveals the fact that, +until within a comparatively recent date, the Russian government had +no fixed policy in or toward Asia. There was a national instinct which +impelled Russia eastward. Twice had Europe been invaded by Asiatic +hordes, and, owing to its position, Russia was doomed to bear the +brunt of the onset. Russia's history points out a ceaseless desire to +be a European nation, to share with Europe its progress and its +burdens. It is within a few years that the heir to the throne first +visited the extensive Asiatic dominions. No czar had ever put foot in +them. Until the reign of Nicholas I (1825-1855), the Russian Empire +spread eastward much as the United States expanded westward, by +individual effort.</p> + +<p>The movement began in 1558, when Ivan the Terrible granted to Gregory +Strogonof ninety-two miles of waste land on the banks of the Kama. The +new owner explored the mineral resources of the Urals, crossed the +mountains, and found himself in the kingdom of Sibir. Strogonof had +become acquainted with one Yermak or Irmak, a Cossack and captain of a +robber band known as the Good Companions of the Don. He had <span class="pagenum"><a id="page260" name="page260"></a>(p. 260)</span> +been condemned to death, if the government could lay hands on him, +which, on account of the sparsity of the population, was exceedingly +doubtful. Strogonof discussed with him a raid into Sibir, and the +Cossack consented, provided his pardon could be secured. Strogonof +went to Moscow and submitted his scheme to Ivan who gave his approval. +Upon his return to the Urals, Strogonof found that he had 850 men, +Russians, Cossacks, Tartars, and German and Polish prisoners of war, +all hardy adventurers. They marched east terrifying the natives with +their firelocks, and levying tribute, that is, taking whatever was +worth the trouble. They defeated the khan, and took his capital, +Sibir, on the Irtish. Yermak then visited Moscow, where he was the +hero of the day. Had he not struck at the very heart of the mysterious +continent whence so much trouble and disgrace had come upon Russia? +And had he not exacted tribute from the very people who not very long +ago held Russia under tribute.</p> + +<p>Yermak was therefore praised and entertained and graciously told to go +ahead, Ivan had neither men nor money to spare, but he was quite +willing that these adventurers should despoil the Asiatics, instead of +holding up Russian travelers and traders. Ivan gave him a suit of +armor as a token of good will. After Yermak's return to Siberia, he +was surprised by the natives and drowned by the weight of his armor as +he was trying to escape by swimming the Irtish. (1584.) Other Cossacks +had heard of his success and followed his example. In 1587, Tobolsk +was founded on the Irtish, ten miles below Sibir.</p> + +<p>There <span class="pagenum"><a id="page261" name="page261"></a>(p. 261)</span> was little or no communication between Siberia and +Moscow, owing to the distance separating them, and the successors of +Ivan had ample trouble on their hands. It was, therefore, left to the +Cossacks to make such explorations and conquests as they could. In +1619, Tomsk was founded. Farther and farther did the Cossacks advance +among the isolated tribes. In 1632, a log fort was built where +Yakoutsk now stands, and six years later they gazed upon the broad +waters of the Pacific and planted the czar's flag on the shore of the +Sea of Okhotsk.</p> + +<p>It was a congenial occupation for the Cossack, to roam where he +pleased and to take what suited his fancy, and he did not lack either +the skill or the courage needed by the explorer. In 1639, a party of +Cossacks under Max Perfirief, discovered the Upper Amoor, and heard +tales of such vast wealth that they hastened to Yakoutsk and placed +their discovery before Peter Petrovitch, the first Russian Governor.</p> + +<p>Men and money were scarce, but the governor, after many efforts +managed to collect 132 men whom he placed in command of Vassili +Poyarkof, with instructions to do the best he could. The party started +on the 15th of July, 1643, and followed the usual course with the +natives with the result that he returned to Yakoutsk in June 1646, +having lost most of his men in attacks by infuriated and outraged +natives, but in possession of a fund of information, and some skins as +tribute.</p> + +<p>During the reign of Alexis Michaelovitch (1645-1676), explorations of +the Amoor regions were pursued vigorously. A young officer of +considerable wealth, named <span class="pagenum"><a id="page262" name="page262"></a>(p. 262)</span> Khabarof, offered to conduct an +expedition at his own expense. This was gladly accepted, and he left +Yakoutsk in 1649. He reached the Amoor and formed a line of forts, and +met a small party among whom was the khan, who asked what his object +was. Khabarof replied that he had come to trade, but that the czar +would probably take the khan under his powerful protection in return +for a small annual tribute. The khan did not answer, and Khabarof +after burning most of the forts and leaving some of his men in +another, returned to Yakoutsk to report.</p> + +<p>In June, 1651, he was on the way back to the Amoor, where he came in +conflict with the Manchus. He, however, forced his way, and gained for +the Russians the reputation that they were "devils, who would make +gridirons of the parents to roast the children on." At this time a +report that the Amoor region contained untold wealth reached Moscow, +where it produced an effect very similar to that felt in Spain after +the return of Columbus.</p> + +<p>Alexis intended to send an expedition of 3,000 men to occupy and hold +this treasure grove, but he was prudent enough to dispatch an officer +to order Khabarof to Moscow, so that he might learn the facts. This +officer, Simovief left Moscow in March, 1652, and met Khabarof in +August of the following year. Leaving the command to his lieutenant +Stepanof, Khabarof obeyed the czar's call. He arrived at Moscow and +after the czar had heard his report, the expedition was given up, but +Alexis wrote to Stepanof, upon whom he conferred some honors, and told +him to continue the good work.</p> + +<p>The interest manifested by the czar inaugurated an exploration +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page263" name="page263"></a>(p. 263)</span> fever among the Russian authorities. Pashkof, the Governor of +Yeniseisk started on the 18th of July, 1656, for the Amoor at the head +of 400 Cossacks; in 1658, he built a fort which was the beginning of +Nerchinsk. It was 1662 before he returned to Yeniseisk.</p> + +<p>Unfortunately the Russians came into a clash with the Manchus, at that +time in full vigor; they had made themselves masters of China, and +their emperor, Kang-hi, was an exceptionably able and strong man. He +did not want war, but on the other hand he did not intend to suffer an +injustice.</p> + +<p>When the government at Moscow became aware that further encroachment +would entail a war with China an ambassador, Feodor Golovin, was +dispatched to come to an understanding. He left Moscow on January 20, +1686, but took his time. Kang-hi had been notified, and ambassadors +were sent from Peking to meet Golovin. The Russian met the Chinese at +Nerchinsk on the 22d August, 1689, and on the 27th the terms of a +treaty were agreed upon. Two days later the treaty was exchanged. +Russia was compelled to withdraw from the Amoor. After this no changes +in the boundary line occurred until after the year 1847.</p> + +<p>In 1707, Kamtschatka was annexed to Russia, and two years later the +first prisoners were sent to Siberia. They were prisoners of war and +natives of conquered European provinces who objected to Muscovite +rule. About 14,000 persons were sent the first year, but many died +from the hardships suffered on the road.</p> + +<p>Besides Siberia, Russia in Asia consists of:</p> + +<p>I. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page264" name="page264"></a>(p. 264)</span> The Caucasus. It was Peter the Great who, in 1722, invaded +Dagestan and seized the greater part of this territory. We have seen +how the mountaineers defended their liberty under Schamyl,<a id="footnotetag11" name="footnotetag11"></a><a href="#footnote11">[11]</a> and it +was left to his son Alexander to annex it and make it part of the +Russian Empire. Including Trans Caucasia, it covers an area of 180,843 +square miles,—or about that of Colorado and Utah, and contains a +population of 8,350,000.</p> + +<p>II. The Kirghiz Steppe. This is a country of plains, unfit for +agriculture and still inhabited by nomads who live in tents and wander +with their flocks over the 755,793 square miles of territory. They are +divided into three hordes or families, one of which surrendered to +Anne Ivanovna in 1734. In 1869 the Kirghiz, together with the Cossacks +of the Don, revolted, but in the autumn of 1870, order was restored. +For administrative purposes, it is divided into:</p> + +<p>III. Transcaspia, which, as the name indicates, includes the region +east of the Caspian Sea. It contains an area of 383,618 square miles +with a population estimated at 352,000. Like the Kirghiz Steppe, it is +unfit for agriculture, although it contains several oases. It was +formed into a province by Alexander III. in 1881.</p> + +<p>IV. Turkestan contains 409,414 square miles with a population of +3,341,000. The valleys of the Oxus and Jaxartes are very fertile, but +the rest of the extensive province is almost a desert. The Oxus or Amu +Daria once formed the boundary of the empires of Cyrus and Alexander. +It was conquered step by step, and after many <span class="pagenum"><a id="page265" name="page265"></a>(p. 265)</span> struggles with +the Turkomans and Kirghiz to whom it originally belonged.</p> + +<p>V. The Khanates, so called because they once formed the territory of +the Khans of Khiva and Bokhara. This province embraces 114,320 square +miles with a population of 3,200,000. Both are recent acquisitions. It +was the war with Khiva, in 1872, which first drew the attention of +Europe to Russia's expansion in Central Asia. There had been some +doubts as to the wisdom of permitting Russia to add more territory to +her already enormous domain, but they had been allayed by a circular +note to the powers, issued by Prince Gortchakof, the Minister of +Foreign Affairs, on November 21, 1864. He declared that Russia had +been brought into contact with a number of half-savage tribes who +proved a constant menace to the security of the Empire, and that the +only means of maintaining order on the frontier, was to bring them +under submission. This, he said, had been done by the United States, +and was nothing but a measure necessary for self-defense.</p> + +<p>This reasoning was self-evident, but in 1873 the press of Great +Britain asked when and where this necessity would cease. Count +Schouvalof was sent to London and in several interviews with Lord +Granville, he stated distinctly and plainly that Russia had no +intention to annex any more territory in Central Asia. He declared<a id="footnotetag12" name="footnotetag12"></a><a href="#footnote12">[12]</a> +solemnly with regard to Khiva that "not only was it far from the +intention of the emperor to take possession of Khiva, but positive +orders had been prepared to <span class="pagenum"><a id="page266" name="page266"></a>(p. 266)</span> prevent it, and directions given +that the conditions imposed should be such as would not in any way +lead to the prolonged occupation of Khiva."</p> + +<p>Notwithstanding this positive declaration, Khiva was annexed on the +10th of June, 1873. Four months afterwards, on the 10th of October, a +treaty was signed by the Khan of Bokhara, giving to Russia free +navigation on the Oxus, and other privileges. It has never been +formally annexed, but is to all intents and purposes Russian +territory.</p> + + + + +<h2>XXIX—RUSSIAN METHODS. THE WAR WITH JAPAN. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page267" name="page267"></a>(p. 267)</span></h2> + + +<p>At the time when the United States and the commercial powers of Europe +were discussing the opening of Japan, Russia resolved, if possible, to +forestall them. In 1847, the czar appointed a young general, Nicholas +Muravieff, as governor of Eastern Siberia. Shortly after entering upon +his office he sent an officer named Vagarof, who had explored the +Amoor River, back to it with four Cossacks to make an extensive +report. The party left Strelka in the spring of 1848, but was never +heard of again. Suspecting that they had been captured by the Chinese, +a demand was made for their surrender on the plea that they were +deserters, but the Chinese replied that they knew nothing of them. +Meanwhile Muravieff had ordered the exploration of the shore of the +Sea of Okhotsk and the mouth of the Amoor. These orders were promptly +executed, and in 1850 Lieutenant Orloff entered the river from the +sea. The following year Captain Nevilskoï, who had come out in the +<i>Baikal</i>, sent a boat up the river and laid the foundations of +Nikolayefsk and Mariinsk, thereby securing a foothold on the Lower +Amoor, knowing all the time that this was Chinese territory, and that +Russia was at peace with China. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page269" name="page269"></a>(p. 269)</span> The survey of the Sea of +Okhotsk was not neglected. Port Imperial on the coast of Manchuria was +discovered and occupied, and Urup, one of the Kurile Islands, was +seized. When Commodore Perry arrived off the coast of Japan, he was +watched by Admiral Poutiatine in command of the <i>Pallas</i>, <i>Vostok</i>, +<i>Olivutzu</i> and <i>Menzikoff</i>. Aniwa Bay was seized the same year, and +Russians landed on the west coast of what is known as Saghalien, but +was known and owned by the Japanese under the name of Karafuto.</p> + +<a id="img018" name="img018"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img018.jpg" width="500" height="318" alt="Village Scene" title="Village Scene"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">Village Scene</p> + +<p>The Crimean War gave Muravieff a pretext to violate farther the treaty +with China. He claimed that the settlements on the Pacific, as well as +the Russian ships, were in need of supplies, and that the ocean route +was closed by the allied fleets. Was it Muravieff's duty to furnish +those supplies? In that case, any reference to the ocean route was +preposterous, because it is absurd to suppose that supplies would be +sent from Eastern Siberia to the north Pacific coast by such a route; +and if he had furnished them before by the overland route through +Siberia, why, that road was open to him. What he needed was a pretext +to secure the occupation of Japan, or at least of some of its islands, +before the other powers could know of it; and for that purpose, it was +necessary to be in possession of the lower Amoor. Perry's energetic +action thwarted him; but he could not know that. What he did know was +that China was not in a condition to oppose him, and that the other +powers need not know what he was doing.</p> + +<p>He determined to send an expedition strong enough to insure respect, +and lost no time in preparing it. Fifty barges, <span class="pagenum"><a id="page270" name="page270"></a>(p. 270)</span> a steamer, +and numerous rafts, a thousand Cossacks with cannon, the whole +commanded by Muravieff himself, left Shilkinsk on the 24th of May, +1854. Following the usual custom, the expedition was accompanied by +scientific men to survey the river, prepare maps, explore the country, +and examine its resources. At ten <span class="smcap">A.M.</span>, June 8, they arrived at Aigun +where Muravieff was received by the Chinese authorities, who displayed +about the same number of armed men, but such men and such arms! +Firelocks dating from the time of Kang-hi—1689,—convinced Muravieff +that fifty Cossacks could put these braves to rout. Not caring to +arouse Chinese hostility for fear that his schemes might attract +attention, Muravieff did not resent it when the Chinese forbade him to +enter the town; he continued on his journey, and on the 27th of June +arrived at Mariinsk. After sending part of his force to Nikolayefsk, +he went on to Port Imperial where he met Admiral Poutiatine. They +discussed the situation, and Poutiatine left for Japan on the <i>Diana</i>.</p> + +<p>Muravieff hurried back as he had come, and prepared another expedition +which he took down the river in 1855. In that year he sent three +thousand Cossacks, and five hundred colonists down the Amoor, together +with horses, cattle, provisions, and military stores. This activity +could not escape the Chinese who dispatched four officials to +Nikolayefsk to protest against the invasion of their territory. They +arrived in July, and were entertained by Muravieff with a review of +his forces; after this hint he simply dismissed them. At this time the +settlements which stood in such urgent need of supplies, were +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page271" name="page271"></a>(p. 271)</span> Mariinsk, which consisted of two log cabins, Nikolayefsk +numbered ten, and Castries Bay had "four badly built huts."<a id="footnotetag13" name="footnotetag13"></a><a href="#footnote13">[13]</a></p> + +<p>In a remarkably short time we hear of the indefatigable Muravieff at +St. Petersburg urging the annexation of the Amoor. He was opposed by +the czar's ministers, but succeeded in convincing the emperor that +China could offer no resistance, and that the powers need not hear of +it until it was too late. Thus he secured large supplies of men and +money. In the beginning of 1857, he was back at his post, and on the +1st of June he dispatched Colonel Ushakof with six hundred men from +Shilkinsk, and soon after followed him with a brigade of Cossack +infantry and a regiment of cavalry, to garrison the forts which he +constructed at strategic points.</p> + +<p>Seizing the opportunity of China's distress caused by the war with +England and France, Muravieff demanded the cession of the Amoor +Valley. The Chinese were helpless. On the 28th of May, 1858, a treaty +was signed at Aigun, giving to Russia the left bank of the Amoor down +to the Ussuri, and both banks below that confluent, besides the right +to navigate the Sungari and Ussuri rivers. Russia gave absolutely +nothing in return. Meanwhile Count Poutiatine had been sent from St. +Petersburg to watch the allies and to profit by any blunder which they +or the Chinese might make. Poutiatine stopped in Japan, claiming that +the Koreans had given him the privilege of establishing a coaling +station at Port Hamilton, but knowing that Great Britain would +certainly investigate his claim, he did not press it. He tried to +seize the Japanese <span class="pagenum"><a id="page272" name="page272"></a>(p. 272)</span> Island Tsushima in the southern entrance +to the Japan Sea, and midway between Japan and Korea; but a polite and +firm invitation from the British admiral to leave that island, and the +admiral's insistence to remain until after he had left it, spoiled +that little game. Poutiatine then proceeded to China where he proposed +to help put down the Tai P'ing rebellion in return for the cession of +Manchuria to Russia. This handsome offer was politely declined. Once +again Muravieff hurried to St. Petersburg; upon his advice the newly +acquired territory was officially annexed, and, by ukase of October +31, joined to the littoral of the Sea of Okhotsk and Kamtschatka under +the name of Maritime Province of Eastern Siberia, with Nikolayevsk as +capital. Muravieff remained in supreme command.</p> + +<p>The tireless empire builder was again on the Pacific Coast in 1858. On +May 21, he founded Blagovestchensk and, after descending the river, +laid the foundation of Khabarofka, at the mouth of the Ussuri. In +October he was back at Kiakhta, arranging for the postal service +between St. Petersburg and the extreme east. On the 26th of August, he +was created Count Amoorsky, or Count of the Amoor, a promotion which +he had well earned. On the 31st of December, a remarkable ukase was +published, beginning "Now that Russia has regained possession of this +valuable region, etc." The entire territory of Eastern Siberia +contained 740,922 square miles, a territory equal to that of all the +Atlantic Coast States, together with Indiana, Ohio, West Virginia, +Kentucky, Tennessee, Alabama, and Mississippi. This did not include +the Amoor Province, which was placed under <span class="pagenum"><a id="page273" name="page273"></a>(p. 273)</span> the +administration of a governor and eighteen officials, who received a +combined annual salary of $18,873.60, of which the governor received +$4680.</p> + +<p>Muravieff was back at his post in 1859. Both he and Poutiatine tried +to induce the Japanese to give up Karafuto (Saghalien), but without +success. At this time there was again trouble between China and the +allied British and French, and when in 1860, a British-French force +marched on Peking, Russia had sent another empire builder, General +Ignatieff, to watch if he could not secure something. He did; when the +allies entered Peking, Ignatieff sought Prince Kung and told him that +the "foreign devils" would surely seize the country unless some strong +power compelled them to leave. Russia was willing to do this, because +she had always been fond of China; and all she asked was a strip of +outlying territory of no value to China. Prince Kung gladly signed +away the whole east coast of Manchuria, six hundred miles long; and +Ignatieff redeemed his promise by visiting Lord Elgin and Baron Gros, +the British and French plenipotentiaries. After paying them some +flattering compliments, he made the remark that the Peiho river would +freeze in a few days, and if they did not get out at once, they would +have to stay all winter in Peking. The two gentlemen finished their +business in a hurry, packed up, and left, but not without thanking +Ignatieff for his kindness and reporting the matter to their +government, which did not hear of the Russian's diplomacy until a year +later. This is how Russia extended her empire on the Pacific Coast.</p> + +<p>For many years the efforts to secure the whole island of <span class="pagenum"><a id="page274" name="page274"></a>(p. 274)</span> +Karafuto continued and Japan saw that war must follow unless a +sacrifice was made. In 1875, Japan surrendered the island, in return +for the Kurile group, but the Japanese treasured in their hearts the +loss and disgrace. It was this which caused the assault upon the +present czar, when he was traveling in Japan.</p> + +<p>In 1894 the war between Japan and China broke out, and when China, +humbled, sued for peace, Japan demanded the cession of the Liaotung +Peninsula,—where Port Arthur is located,—besides making other +conditions. When this became known, Russia, after securing the help of +Germany and France, gave Japan the "friendly advice," which was really +a threat, not to take that peninsula. Japan, single-handed, could not +fight the three powers, and gave way; but every Japanese, high or low, +young or old, was determined to pay off Russia. They bought or built +war vessels everywhere and increased their army. Russia did not like +this, and proposed that Japan should take all the islands in the +Pacific, the Philippines, Hawaii, Borneo, etc., and leave the +continent of Asia to Russia. Japan declined, and went on building +ships. In the end of 1898, Russia announced that she had "leased" the +very Liaotung Peninsula which she had prevented Japan from taking. +Japan understood, as the whole world did, that this "lease" meant +possession. The Japanese statesmen did not protest, because there was +but one protest that Russia would heed,—an appeal to arms. That was +Japan's method when, in 1899, Alexander Pavloff, the Russian minister +in Korea, secured from that government a concession in the port of +Masampo, opening into the entrance <span class="pagenum"><a id="page275" name="page275"></a>(p. 275)</span> to the Japan Sea. Japan's +demand was: Let Masampo go, or it means war. And Russia evacuated +Masampo, while Pavloff was told that he might take a furlough. Then +came 1900, the Boxer troubles and the international march upon Peking. +Japanese officers took note of the Russian troops, leaving the +Russians to do the same with their soldiers. Japan never ceased her +preparations. In the latter part of 1901, Marquis Ito Hirobumi visited +the United States and crossed over to England, where he proposed an +offensive-defensive alliance. British statesmen hesitated, when Ito +told them in plain terms that if no such treaty was concluded, he was +authorized to go on to Russia, and make the best terms he could for +his country.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile Pavloff had returned to Seoul, the capital of Korea, and by +means best known to Russian diplomats, was trying to gain a foothold +on the Peninsula. Under the pretext of a timber concession, the +Russians constructed a fort on the Korean side of the Yalu +river,—where it was afterwards discovered by newspaper +correspondents. Russia had secured control of Manchuria with its +362,310 square miles and 11,250,000 population, and none of the powers +dared protest. Japan was ready. Could she allow the "peaceful" +absorption of Korea, as that of Manchuria had been accomplished? Safe +in the offensive-defensive alliance with Great Britain, Japan +approached Russia in a dignified manner, to be put off with vague +replies. After six months of patience, Japan broke off diplomatic +intercourse, and, as this is considered equal to a declaration of war, +she struck and hit hard.</p> + + +<span class="pagenum"><a id="page276" name="page276"></a>(p. 276)</span> +<a id="img019" name="img019"></a> +<div class="figcenter"> +<img src="images/img019.jpg" width="500" height="364" alt="St. Petersburg" title="St. Petersburg"> +</div> +<p class="figcenter">St. Petersburg</p> + + + + +<h2>XXX—RUSSIA LOSES HER PRESTIGE. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page277" name="page277"></a>(p. 277)</span></h2> + + +<p>When, in February, 1904, the world was startled by the Japanese guns +in the harbor of Chemulpo (Korea), one of Russia's well-known +diplomats, speaking in defense of his country, said: "Ours has been a +peaceful absorption." Another statesman, pleading for sympathy, +remarked pathetically: "We were unprepared for war." The two advocates +of Russia's cause spoke the truth, but they did not proclaim the whole +truth.</p> + +<p>Ever since Muravieff Amoorsky began the peaceful absorption of +Manchuria by seizing the coastline of that province, Russia has +extended her dominions using no other weapon than her prestige, that +is, the dread inspired by her name, power, and resources. Repeated +protests from Great Britain remained unheeded, because the czar's +government was convinced that they would not be emphasized by a resort +to arms. The semi-civilized tribes of Central Asia were unable, of +course, to oppose the Russian advance; and China was justly afraid of +defying the great northern power. Thus the peaceful absorption +continued with such ease that the Russian tchinovnik ended in +believing in their country's prestige. Herein lies the principal cause +of the astounding history of the war with Japan.</p> + +<p>Although <span class="pagenum"><a id="page278" name="page278"></a>(p. 278)</span> Russia repeatedly agreed to evacuate Manchuria, her +actions in the construction of railways and other roads, the opening +of mines, the enormous capital expended in creating a commercial +emporium in Dalny, and her jealousy in excluding foreigners from that +territory,—all this was ample evidence that nothing short of +compulsion would cause her to withdraw. Besides, Alexander Pavloff, +the Russian Minister in Korea, was anxious to emulate Count Cassini, +his former chief at Peking. He was constantly plotting to secure a +foothold in the Peninsula. In 1903, it was announced that a Russian +company had obtained a timber concession on the Yalu River. A few +months afterwards, some American newspaper correspondents with the +Japanese army discovered the ruins of a Russian fort on that river, +securely screened from indiscreet eyes, but in a fine position to +control the passage. That was the timber concession.</p> + +<p>Russia's policy, therefore, was a serious menace to Japan. But Japan +did not purpose to draw ridicule by unavailing protests. Feverishly +the preparations for more emphatic action were continued; in the +latter part of 1903, Japan was ready. Safe from a possible European +intervention by her treaty with Great Britain, Japan reminded Russia +of her promise to evacuate Manchuria on October 7, and requested an +explanation for not keeping the pledge. Russia, with a blind faith in +her prestige, replied that the affair did not concern Japan but China, +whereupon Japan made a proposition concerning Manchuria and Korea +which would be acceptable. With studied contempt replies from the czar +were held back beyond <span class="pagenum"><a id="page279" name="page279"></a>(p. 279)</span> the time permitted by international +courtesy. Moreover their tenor was not only unsatisfactory, but was +also calculated to exasperate the proud Japanese. When the final +preparations were made, Japan instructed her minister to St. +Petersburg, to demand his passports,—an act equivalent to a +declaration of war.</p> + +<p>The tchinovnik doubted their senses. Russia maintained that a +severance of diplomatic relations did not necessarily imply an appeal +to the sword, when the news flashed over the wires that the Russian +war vessels Varyag and Koreyetz had been blown up at Chemulpo to +escape being captured. The world was still marveling at Japan's +audacity when it was informed that three other Russian war vessels had +been disabled owing to a night torpedo attack under Admiral Togo.</p> + +<p>Why was the Russian fleet, numerically superior to that of Japan, +divided? The answer is found in that fatal word: prestige. Pavloff in +Korea had requested the presence of the two doomed ships, to keep the +Japanese in awe. Admiral Stark lay under the guns of impregnable Port +Arthur, trusting to the prestige, when the illusion vanished. There +was still the Vladivostok squadron; it made an effort to induce Togo +to leave Port Arthur by making a raid upon the north coast of Japan, +but in vain. Beyond sinking a few unarmed merchantmen, nothing of +importance was accomplished.</p> + +<p>The czar's choice to restore Russia's naval prestige, fell upon +Admiral Makaroff. At about the same time, General Kuropatkin, the +former Minister of War, was charged with punishing Japan for her +insolence. His departure for the Far East was theatrical. After many +genuflexions <span class="pagenum"><a id="page280" name="page280"></a>(p. 280)</span> before sacred eikons, he promised to restore +Russia's prestige by dictating terms of peace in Tokyo.</p> + +<p>Makaroff was less enthusiastic, and perhaps more in earnest. It is +asserted that he restored discipline in a sadly demoralized fleet. He +was enticed out of Port Arthur's shelter by a small fleet of the +enemy's cruisers sent out as a decoy. When he discovered Togo's +ironclads he returned to port, but his flagship struck a mine at the +entrance to Port Arthur and sunk. The Admiral, as well as his guest, +the noted battle painter Verestchagin, perished.</p> + +<p>With Togo blockading Port Arthur and Admiral Kaminura guarding +Vladivostok, the Japanese secured the freedom of the sea, and began to +pour troops into Korea. This was greeted with acclamation by the +tchinovnik who, after their naval misfortunes, claimed that the +situation would soon be reversed by the army. Some Japanese soldiers +were landed openly at Chemulpo, but the bulk went ashore in a +well-concealed harbor south of the Yalu River. General Kuroki was in +command.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile Kuropatkin was in Manchuria busy organizing the army when +not obstructed by Viceroy Alexieff. Such troops as he found were +capable of rendering good service in hunting down Chinese brigands, +but, as the sequel proved, the army had also been nurtured upon that +most indigestible material, prestige. To the wonder of Europe,—and to +a less degree of America,—Kuroki crossed the Yalu and sent the czar's +dreaded soldiers flying before him. (May 1, 1904.)</p> + +<p>Once <span class="pagenum"><a id="page281" name="page281"></a>(p. 281)</span> more, and for the last time, did the Russian fleet at +Port Arthur attempt a sortie. It failed, and its fate was sealed.</p> + +<p>While the wreckage of Russia's once proud fleet lay concealed in Port +Arthur's inner basin, the Japanese, after scouring the waters to clear +them from mines, landed troops on the Liaotung Peninsula, claimed by +Japan after the war with China, but despoiled of it by Russia's +peaceful absorption. In 1894, Port Arthur was taken in a day from the +Chinese: the Russians defended the impregnable fortress for six +months. "Our prestige demands that the enemy shall not capture Port +Arthur," cried the tchinovnik, and Kuropatkin was ordered to General +Stoessel's rescue. The attempt failed, and General Nogi could pursue +the siege without being disturbed. (June 14-15, 1904.)</p> + +<p>A stolid, ignorant, and densely superstitious people was at war with a +rejuvenated nation keenly alive to the power of education. That is the +secret. Man for man, Russia would have won. But the resourcefulness of +the little brown man more than offset the Russian's physical +superiority. As the year 1905 dawned, the fall of Port Arthur was made +known to the world.</p> + +<p>Slowly, but heralded by the marvels it would accomplish, the Baltic +fleet under Rojestvensky sailed to Madagascar, welcome to whatever aid +the French ally could bestow. Japan said nothing, but made a note of +it. She cleaned and scraped her sea-worn, battle-scarred vessels, +under the supervision of grim, silent Togo. Oyama, the Japanese +commander-in-chief, reënforced by the veterans of Kuroki and Nogi, was +playing with Kuropatkin until he <span class="pagenum"><a id="page282" name="page282"></a>(p. 282)</span> had the game in his hand. +After ten days of hard fighting, the discomfited Russians made a +masterly retreat to the Sha river, after evacuating Mukden, the cradle +of the present Chinese dynasty, (August 26-September 4, 1904.)</p> + +<p>Kuropatkin deserved credit for the manner in which he extricated the +remains of the czar's army. Oyama did not feel safe in following up +the pursuit. His game was that of a skillful chess player. First make +sure of the result with mathematical precision, then strike. The +Japanese were deaf to the demand for brilliant dashes.</p> + +<p>After the battle of Liao-yang, the armies seemed idle so far as news +from the front went. Oyama attacked his former antagonist on the +Shakhe River and drove the discomfited Russians beyond Tie pass. +General Kuropatkin was superseded by his former subordinate Liniévitch +who, however, accomplished nothing to warrant his promotion.</p> + +<p>Meanwhile the Baltic fleet left the hospitable shores of Madagascar, +proclaiming its search for Togo, together with the determination to +punish the impertinent Japanese. In the latter part of May, 1905, +Admiral Rojestvensky made a dash for Vladivostok through the Tsu +channel, the southern entrance to the Sea of Japan. Togo intercepted +him, and a battle followed which, in its results, stands unique in the +history of naval warfare. At a cost of three torpedo boats, 113 +killed, and 444 wounded, the Japanese sank 6 Russian battleships, 1 +coast defense vessel, 3 special service boats, and 3 destroyers, +besides capturing 2 battleships, 2 coast defense vessels, and 1 +destroyer, The losses in killed were 8,550 and <span class="pagenum"><a id="page283" name="page283"></a>(p. 283)</span> over 3,000 +prisoners, among them Admirals Rojestvensky and Nebogatoff, were taken +to Japan. As a result of this one-sided battle, Russia's naval power +is broken. (May 27-28, 1905.)</p> + +<p>While President Theodore Roosevelt seized this opportunity to approach +the belligerents in favor of peace, pointing out the hopelessness of +continuing the struggle to Russia and appealing to Japan's +magnanimity, the world was startled by the revolt of the Kniaz +Potemkin, a first-class battleship of the Black Sea squadron. The +mutineers found no support, and what might have proved a serious +danger to the house of Romanoff, ended by the ship being sunk in +Roumanian waters. She was recovered by the Russians.</p> + +<p>President Roosevelt's efforts toward bringing the two powers together, +proved successful. Washington was agreed upon as the place for the +negotiations, but the plenipotentiaries, Sergius Witte and Baron de +Rosen acting for Russia, met Baron Komura and Minister Takahira, who +represented Japan, at Portsmouth, N. H., where the United States acted +as host.</p> + +<p>The incompatibility of Japan's demands and Russia's concessions on +several occasions brought the plenipotentiaries on the verge of +rupture. With the single-mindedness born of an unselfish purpose, +President Roosevelt exerted all the personal influence he could bring +to bear upon czar and emperor with the result that the victor gave the +world an astounding lesson in magnanimity. Japan made peace possible +by withdrawing her demands for indemnity and the cession of territory +beyond that of which Russia had robbed her,—the southern half of the +island <span class="pagenum"><a id="page284" name="page284"></a>(p. 284)</span> of Sakhalin, which will be once more Karafuto for the +Japanese.</p> + +<p>The terms of the Treaty of Peace were agreed upon at Portsmouth on the +29th of August 1905. The war had lasted from the 5th of February, +1904, or 572 days. Russia paid in men 375,000, in money +$1,075,000,000,—all for peaceful absorption and support of prestige. +Cassini's shrewd move, ten years before, in robbing Japan of the +Liaotung Peninsula and Port Arthur, has ended in Japan's obtaining +possession of that key to Peking, with the promise of holding it +beyond the possibility of recapture, until China recovers its manhood. +The Treaty of Peace was signed September 5, at Portsmouth, N. H.</p> + +<p>What will be the effect of the war upon the Russian people? While the +plenipotentiaries were discussing the terms of peace, autocracy +launched a ukase calling for a consultative assembly. Russian +thinkers, however, reflect that, so long as autocracy exists and the +tchinovnik admit no other authority but that of the czar, another +ukase may revoke the doubtful boon.</p> + +<p>No one knows what the morrow will bring, either to us or to the Slav. +Yet it seems absurd to suppose that, after the lessons of corruption +and incompetence of the present government, the educated Russians will +remain quiescent while the great empire continues on its downward +course. Mediævalism has come into contact with the spirit of the +twentieth century, and has been found wanting. It seems as if the dawn +of a new era for Russia is at hand.</p> + + + + +<h2>INDEX. <span class="pagenum"><a id="page285" name="page285"></a>(p. 285)</span></h2> + + +<div class="left05"> +<p>A</p> + + +<p>Abdul Aziz, +<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br> + + Abdul Hamid, +<a href="#page232">232</a>.<br> + + Alexander I, the Well-beloved, +<a href="#page197">197</a>.<br> + + Alexander II, the Liberator, +<a href="#page218">218</a>.<br> + + Alexander III, the Peasants' Friend, +<a href="#page241">241</a>.<br> + + Alexander of Battenberg, +<a href="#page246">246</a>.<br> + + Alexander Nevski, +<a href="#page060">60</a>, +<a href="#page069">69</a>.<br> + + Alexis Michaelovitch, +<a href="#page141">141</a>.<br> + + Alexis, son of Peter the Great, +<a href="#page170">170</a>.<br> + + Andrew Bogolioubski, +<a href="#page054">54</a>.<br> + + Anne Ivanovna, Czarina, +<a href="#page175">175</a>.<br> + + Area of Russia, +<a href="#page014">14</a>.<br> + + Armenians, +<a href="#page255">255</a>.<br> + + Askold, +<a href="#page030">30</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">B</p> + +<p>Baskak, Tartar tax collector, +<a href="#page071">71</a>.<br> + + Bati, Khan of the Golden Horde, +<a href="#page065">65</a>.<br> + + Battle of the Oka, +<a href="#page102">102</a>.<br> + + Boundaries of Russia, +<a href="#page015">15</a>.<br> + + Boyard, noble, +<a href="#page056">56</a>.<br> + + Byzantium, former name of Constantinople.</p> + + +<p class="p2">C</p> + +<p>Catherine I, wife of Peter the Great, +<a href="#page169">169</a>, +<a href="#page171">171</a>, +<a href="#page173">173</a>.<br> + + Catherine II, the Great, +<a href="#page183">183</a>.<br> + + Caucasus, The +<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br> + + Chouïski, Andrew, +<a href="#page112">112</a>.<br> + + Chouïski, Czar, +<a href="#page134">134</a>.<br> + + Christianity, +<a href="#page036">36</a>, +<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br> + + Climate of Russia, +<a href="#page018">18</a>.<br> + + Constantine, +<a href="#page058">58</a>.<br> + + Council of Florence, attempt to unite the Roman and Greek Churches, +<a href="#page060">60</a>.<br> + + Crimea The, annexed, +<a href="#page190">190</a>.<br> + + Crimean War, +<a href="#page215">215</a>.<br> + + Cyril, +<a href="#page036">36</a>.<br> + + Czar, king, +<a href="#page112">112</a>.<br> + + Czargrad, city of the king.<br> + + Czarina, wife of the czar.</p> + + +<p class="p2">D</p> + +<p>Dagh Bog the sun god, +<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br> + + Diak, secretary, +<a href="#page107">107</a>.<br> + + Dir, +<a href="#page030">30</a>.<br> + + Dmitri Donskoï, +<a href="#page087">87</a>.<br> + + Dnieper, +<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br> + + Donskoï, of the Don, surname of Dmitri, +<a href="#page091">91</a>.<br> + + Douma, council of nobles, +<a href="#page131">131</a>.<br> + + Drujina, body-guard, +<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br> + + Düna, +<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br> + + Dvor, inclosure, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Dwina, +<a href="#page020">20</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">E</p> + +<p>Eikon, image of a saint, +<a href="#page044">44</a>, +<a href="#page055">55</a>.<br> + + Elizabeth, Queen of England, +<a href="#page118">118</a>.<br> + + Elizabeth, Czarina, +<a href="#page178">178</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">F</p> + +<p>Feodor (Theodore), Son of Ivan the Terrible, +<a href="#page129">129</a>.<br> + + Feodor Alexievitch, +<a href="#page144">144</a>.<br> + + Finland, +<a href="#page026">26</a>.<br> + + Finns, +<a href="#page026">26</a>.<br> + + Frederick the Great, +<a href="#page188">188</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">G</p> + +<p>Galitch, Southwest Russia, +<a href="#page061">61</a>.<br> + + Gedimin, +<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br> + + Genghis Khan, +<a href="#page064">64</a>.<br> + + George Dolgorouki, +<a href="#page051">51</a>.<br> + + George, Grand Duke of Moscow, +<a href="#page083">83</a>.<br> + + Godounof, Boris, Czar, +<a href="#page129">129</a>.<br> + + Gosti, guest, Russian for merchant, +<a href="#page124">124</a>.<br> + + Goubernii, Government or province, +<a href="#page226">226</a>.<br> + + Greece, independence of, +<a href="#page209">209</a>.<br> + + Greek Church, +<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br> + + Gustavus Wasa, +<a href="#page119">119</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">H</p> + +<p>Hetman, chief of Cossacks.</p> + + +<p class="p2">I</p> + +<p>Iarlikh, patent or written authorisation from the khan, +<a href="#page073">73</a>.<br> + + Iaropolk, +<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br> + + Iaroslaf II, +<a href="#page044">44</a>.<br> + + Igor, son of Rurik, +<a href="#page030">30</a>, +<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br> + + Iouri, George, +<a href="#page111">111</a>.<br> + + Isiaslaf, +<a href="#page050">50</a>.<br> + + Ivan Kalita, +<a href="#page085">85</a>.<br> + + Ivan II, +<a href="#page088">88</a>.<br> + + Ivan III, the Great, +<a href="#page097">97</a>.<br> + + Ivan IV, the Terrible, +<a href="#page111">111</a>.<br> + + Ivan Alexievitch, +<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br> + + Ivan Ivanovitch, +<a href="#page177">177</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">J</p> + +<p>Jagellon, +<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br> + + Jews, persecution of the, +<a href="#page242">242</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">K</p> + +<p>Kalita, alms-bag, +<a href="#page087">87</a>.<br> + + Kazan, +<a href="#page119">119</a>.<br> + + Khanates, the, +<a href="#page265">265</a>.<br> + + Kholop, slave, +<a href="#page123">123</a>.<br> + + Kief, +<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br> + + Kirghiz Steppe, +<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br> + + Kniaz, duke, defender, prince, +<a href="#page030">30</a>, +<a href="#page045">45</a>.<br> + + Kosciusko, Thaddeus, +<a href="#page191">191</a>.<br> + + Kostroma, +<a href="#page019">19</a>.<br> + + Kublaï Khan, +<a href="#page068">68</a>.<br> + + Krestianine, true Christian, surname given to the peasants during the Tartar yoke.</p> + + +<p class="p2">L</p> + +<p>Leo the Deacon, historian, +<a href="#page037">37</a>, +<a href="#page039">39</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">M</p> + +<p>Mangou, grandson of Genghis Khan, +<a href="#page067">67</a>.<br> + + Mazeppa, +<a href="#page147">147</a>, +<a href="#page158">158</a>.<br> + + Methodius, +<a href="#page036">36</a>.<br> + + Metropolitan, Head of the Greek Church, +<a href="#page056">56</a>.<br> + + Michael, Grand Duke of Tver, +<a href="#page075">75</a>.<br> + + Michael, first czar of the present dynasty, +<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br> + + Mindvog, +<a href="#page079">79</a>.<br> + + Minine, Kouzma, a Russian patriot, +<a href="#page134">134</a>.<br> + + Mir, communal village, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Moscow, Burning of, +<a href="#page202">202</a>.<br> + + Moujik, lit. Manikin, contemptuous word for peasant, +<a href="#page034">34</a>.<br> + + Mstislaf the Bold, +<a href="#page058">58</a>.<br> + + Mstislaf the Brave, +<a href="#page055">55</a>.<br> + + Murad V, +<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br> + + Muravieff Amoorsky, +<a href="#page267">267</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">N</p> + +<p>Namiestnik, ducal delegate, +<a href="#page106">106</a>.<br> + + Napoleon I, +<a href="#page197">197</a>.<br> + + Napoleon III, +<a href="#page213">213</a>, +<a href="#page229">229</a>.<br> + + Nicholas I, +<a href="#page207">207</a>.<br> + + Nicholas II, +<a href="#page251">251</a>.<br> + + Nicon, Reformer, +<a href="#page144">144</a>.<br> + + Nihilism, +<a href="#page234">234</a>.<br> + + Nestor, Russian historian, +<a href="#page029">29</a>, +<a href="#page032">32</a>.<br> + + Novgorod, Republic of, +<a href="#page029">29</a>, +<a href="#page097">97</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">O</p> + +<p>Oktaï, khan, +<a href="#page069">69</a>.<br> + + Olga, +<a href="#page042">42</a>.<br> + + Olgerd, +<a href="#page080">80</a>.<br> + + Oleg, +<a href="#page030">30</a>, +<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br> + + Olmutz, Battle of, +<a href="#page198">198</a>.<br> + + Oulogenia, Code of Laws under Ivan III., +<a href="#page105">105</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">P</p> + +<p>Pan-Germanism, +<a href="#page246">246</a>.<br> + + Pan-Slavism, +<a href="#page245">245</a>.<br> + + Paul I, +<a href="#page194">194</a>.<br> + + Peace Congress, +<a href="#page256">256</a>.<br> + + Peipus, Lake, Battle on the Ice, +<a href="#page070">70</a>.<br> + + Perun, god of thunder, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Peter the Great, +<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br> + + Peter II, +<a href="#page174">174</a>.<br> + + Peter III, +<a href="#page179">179</a>.<br> + + Philarete, Metropolitan, father of the first Romanof, +<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br> + + Plemia, confederacy of tribes, +<a href="#page028">28</a>.<br> + + Poland, Partition of, +<a href="#page188">188</a>.<br> + + Poliessa, forest region, +<a href="#page020">20</a>.<br> + + Poniatowski, Stanislas, +<a href="#page187">187</a>.<br> + + Portsmouth, Peace treaty at, +<a href="#page284">284</a>.<br> + + Possadnik, burgomaster or commandant, +<a href="#page052">52</a>.<br> + + Prestige, Russia loses her, +<a href="#page277">277</a>.<br> + + Pskof, Republic of, +<a href="#page051">51</a>.<br> + + Pultowa, Battle of, +<a href="#page081">81</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">R</p> + +<p>Raskol, plur. Raskolnik, Religious Madmen, opponents to Nicon's reforms, +<a href="#page146">146</a>.<br> + + Roman, Duke of Volhynia, +<a href="#page061">61</a>.<br> + + Romanof, Anastasia, wife of Ivan the Terrible, +<a href="#page114">114</a>.<br> + + Romanof, Michael, elected czar, +<a href="#page135">135</a>.<br> + + Rurik, +<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br> + + Russkaïa Pravda, Russian Right, +<a href="#page045">45</a>.<br> + + Ryndis, young nobles, +<a href="#page110">110</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">S</p> + +<p>St. Petersburg founded, +<a href="#page168">168</a>.<br> + + Saraï, Capital of the Golden Horde, +<a href="#page068">68</a>.<br> + + Schamyl, +<a href="#page209">209</a>.<br> + + Scythians, +<a href="#page023">23</a>.<br> + + Simeon, first Grand Duke of All the Russias, +<a href="#page088">88</a>.<br> + + Sineous, +<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br> + + Slavophil, Friend of Slavs, +<a href="#page230">230</a>.<br> + + Slavs, +<a href="#page025">25</a>.<br> + + Smerd, boor, lout.<br> + + Sophia, Autocrat of All the Russias, +<a href="#page145">145</a>.<br> + + Starost, elder or mayor, +<a href="#page052">52</a>.<br> + + Streltsi, national guard, +<a href="#page121">121</a>.<br> + + Stri Bog, god of the winds, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Sviatopolk, +<a href="#page044">44</a>, +<a href="#page049">49</a>.<br> + + Sviatoslaf, +<a href="#page035">35</a>, +<a href="#page041">41</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">T</p> + +<p>Tamerlane, +<a href="#page092">92</a>.<br> + + Tartars or Tatars, +<a href="#page063">63</a>.<br> + + Tartartchina, Tartar Yoke, +<a href="#page073">73</a>.<br> + + Tcherné. Black people, name applied to the people by the nobles, +<a href="#page077">77</a>.<br> + + Tchélobitié, Beating of the forehead, i. e., petition, +<a href="#page123">123</a>.<br> + + Tchin, plur. Tchinovnik, lit. Gentlemen, now Officials, +<a href="#page164">164</a>.<br> + + Tilsit, meeting at, +<a href="#page199">199</a>.<br> + + Transcaspia, +<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br> + + Treaty of Berlin, +<a href="#page234">234</a>.<br> + + Treaty of Paris, +<a href="#page220">220</a>.<br> + + Truvor, +<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br> + + Turkestan, +<a href="#page264">264</a>.<br> + + Turks, +<a href="#page094">94</a>, +<a href="#page231">231</a>.<br> + + Turkey, war with, +<a href="#page232">232</a>.<br> + + Tysatski, commandant of the militia, +<a href="#page052">52</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">U</p> + +<p>Ukase, imperial edict equal to law Ural Mountains, +<a href="#page018">18</a>.<br> + + Uzbeck, Khan, +<a href="#page068">68</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">V</p> + +<p>Valdai Plateau, +<a href="#page019">19</a>.<br> + + Varingians, Norsemen, +<a href="#page029">29</a>.<br> + + Vassili the Blind, +<a href="#page093">93</a>.<br> + + Vetché, Municipal Council, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Vitovt, +<a href="#page081">81</a>.<br> + + Vladimir Monomachus, +<a href="#page049">49</a>.<br> + + Vladimir, Saint, +<a href="#page041">41</a>.<br> + + Voievod, governor of a fortress, +<a href="#page033">33</a>.<br> + + Volga, +<a href="#page119">119</a>.<br> + + Voloss, god of the flocks, +<a href="#page027">27</a>.<br> + + Volost, county or canton, +<a href="#page028">28</a>.<br> + + Vsevolod, +<a href="#page057">57</a>.</p> + + +<p class="p2">Z</p> + +<p>Zemstvo, Assembly, +<a href="#page226">226</a>.<br> + + Zimisces, John, +<a href="#page038">38</a>.</p></div> + + +<p><a id="footnote1" name="footnote1"></a> +<b>Footnote 1:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag1">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote2" name="footnote2"></a> +<b>Footnote 2:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag2">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote3" name="footnote3"></a> +<b>Footnote 3:</b> Mstislaf the Brave was buried in the church of St. +Sophia.<a href="#footnotetag3">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote4" name="footnote4"></a> +<b>Footnote 4:</b> Kostomarof.<a href="#footnotetag4">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote5" name="footnote5"></a> +<b>Footnote 5:</b> Ta, great; hence: the Great +Tzis.<a href="#footnotetag5">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote6" name="footnote6"></a> +<b>Footnote 6:</b> Where Kalouga now stands.<a href="#footnotetag6">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote7" name="footnote7"></a> +<b>Footnote 7:</b> Planus Corpinius.<a href="#footnotetag7">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote8" name="footnote8"></a> +<b>Footnote 8:</b> Karamsin.<a href="#footnotetag8">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote9" name="footnote9"></a> +<b>Footnote 9:</b> Wallace.<a href="#footnotetag9">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote10" name="footnote10"></a> +<b>Footnote 10:</b> Priests.<a href="#footnotetag10">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote11" name="footnote11"></a> +<b>Footnote 11:</b> See p. <a href="#page209">209</a><a href="#footnotetag11">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote12" name="footnote12"></a> +<b>Footnote 12:</b> Parliamentary Papers, Central Asia. 1873.<a href="#footnotetag12">(Back)</a></p> + +<p><a id="footnote13" name="footnote13"></a> +<b>Footnote 13:</b> Ravenstein, Russians on the Amoor.<a href="#footnotetag13">(Back)</a></p> + + + + + + + + + +<pre> + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Story of Russia, by R. Van Bergen + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE STORY OF RUSSIA *** + +***** This file should be named 20880-h.htm or 20880-h.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + http://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/8/8/20880/ + +Produced by Barbara Tozier, Bill Tozier, Christine P. +Travers and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at +http://www.pgdp.net + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +http://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at http://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit http://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. +To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + http://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + + +</pre> + +</body> +</html> diff --git a/20880-h/images/img001.jpg b/20880-h/images/img001.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7d066b --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img001.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..7687c19 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img001bg.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img002.jpg b/20880-h/images/img002.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..ad9f1a0 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img002.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..9fb615d --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img002bg.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img003.jpg b/20880-h/images/img003.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..dd571d7 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img003.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img004.jpg b/20880-h/images/img004.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..85e42a1 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img004.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img005.jpg b/20880-h/images/img005.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..3c82646 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img005.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img006.jpg b/20880-h/images/img006.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..2f70779 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img006.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img007.jpg b/20880-h/images/img007.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..e3796fc --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img007.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img008.jpg b/20880-h/images/img008.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..a6ed85f --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img008.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img009.jpg b/20880-h/images/img009.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..96a3281 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img009.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img010.jpg b/20880-h/images/img010.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..5aa6d62 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img010.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img011.jpg b/20880-h/images/img011.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..d94b388 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img011.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img012.jpg b/20880-h/images/img012.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..b1f40c3 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img012.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img013.jpg b/20880-h/images/img013.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..bf2ceed --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img013.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img014.jpg b/20880-h/images/img014.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..bdcc585 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img014.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img015.jpg b/20880-h/images/img015.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..19e05d9 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img015.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img016.jpg b/20880-h/images/img016.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..0657c4d --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img016.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img017.jpg b/20880-h/images/img017.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..9422338 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img017.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg b/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..f1ca01b --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img017bg.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img018.jpg b/20880-h/images/img018.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..1936c15 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img018.jpg diff --git a/20880-h/images/img019.jpg b/20880-h/images/img019.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..88890c0 --- /dev/null +++ b/20880-h/images/img019.jpg |
